Added source texts
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 161.txt
1
2 SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
3
4 by Jane Austen
5
6 (1811)
7
8
9
10
11 CHAPTER 1
12
13
14 The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex. Their estate
15 was large, and their residence was at Norland Park, in the centre of
16 their property, where, for many generations, they had lived in so
17 respectable a manner as to engage the general good opinion of their
18 surrounding acquaintance. The late owner of this estate was a single
19 man, who lived to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his
20 life, had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister. But her
21 death, which happened ten years before his own, produced a great
22 alteration in his home; for to supply her loss, he invited and received
23 into his house the family of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal
24 inheritor of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended to
25 bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece, and their
26 children, the old Gentleman's days were comfortably spent. His
27 attachment to them all increased. The constant attention of Mr. and
28 Mrs. Henry Dashwood to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from
29 interest, but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
30 comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness of the
31 children added a relish to his existence.
32
33 By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one son: by his present
34 lady, three daughters. The son, a steady respectable young man, was
35 amply provided for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
36 and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age. By his own
37 marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards, he added to his
38 wealth. To him therefore the succession to the Norland estate was not
39 so really important as to his sisters; for their fortune, independent
40 of what might arise to them from their father's inheriting that
41 property, could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
42 father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal; for the
43 remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was also secured to her
44 child, and he had only a life-interest in it.
45
46 The old gentleman died: his will was read, and like almost every other
47 will, gave as much disappointment as pleasure. He was neither so
48 unjust, nor so ungrateful, as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but
49 he left it to him on such terms as destroyed half the value of the
50 bequest. Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his wife
51 and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to his son, and his
52 son's son, a child of four years old, it was secured, in such a way, as
53 to leave to himself no power of providing for those who were most dear
54 to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge on the estate, or
55 by any sale of its valuable woods. The whole was tied up for the
56 benefit of this child, who, in occasional visits with his father and
57 mother at Norland, had so far gained on the affections of his uncle, by
58 such attractions as are by no means unusual in children of two or three
59 years old; an imperfect articulation, an earnest desire of having his
60 own way, many cunning tricks, and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh
61 all the value of all the attention which, for years, he had received
62 from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to be unkind, however,
63 and, as a mark of his affection for the three girls, he left them a
64 thousand pounds a-piece.
65
66 Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe; but his temper was
67 cheerful and sanguine; and he might reasonably hope to live many years,
68 and by living economically, lay by a considerable sum from the produce
69 of an estate already large, and capable of almost immediate
70 improvement. But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was
71 his only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer; and ten
72 thousand pounds, including the late legacies, was all that remained for
73 his widow and daughters.
74
75 His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known, and to him Mr.
76 Dashwood recommended, with all the strength and urgency which illness
77 could command, the interest of his mother-in-law and sisters.
78
79 Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the rest of the
80 family; but he was affected by a recommendation of such a nature at
81 such a time, and he promised to do every thing in his power to make
82 them comfortable. His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
83 and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how much there might
84 prudently be in his power to do for them.
85
86 He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to be rather cold hearted
87 and rather selfish is to be ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well
88 respected; for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge of
89 his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman, he might
90 have been made still more respectable than he was:--he might even have
91 been made amiable himself; for he was very young when he married, and
92 very fond of his wife. But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature
93 of himself;--more narrow-minded and selfish.
94
95 When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated within himself to
96 increase the fortunes of his sisters by the present of a thousand
97 pounds a-piece. He then really thought himself equal to it. The
98 prospect of four thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
99 besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune, warmed his
100 heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.-- "Yes, he would give
101 them three thousand pounds: it would be liberal and handsome! It would
102 be enough to make them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he
103 could spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."-- He
104 thought of it all day long, and for many days successively, and he did
105 not repent.
106
107 No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John Dashwood,
108 without sending any notice of her intention to her mother-in-law,
109 arrived with her child and their attendants. No one could dispute her
110 right to come; the house was her husband's from the moment of his
111 father's decease; but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the
112 greater, and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only common
113 feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--but in HER mind there was
114 a sense of honor so keen, a generosity so romantic, that any offence of
115 the kind, by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source of
116 immovable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never been a favourite with
117 any of her husband's family; but she had had no opportunity, till the
118 present, of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort of
119 other people she could act when occasion required it.
120
121 So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious behaviour, and so
122 earnestly did she despise her daughter-in-law for it, that, on the
123 arrival of the latter, she would have quitted the house for ever, had
124 not the entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect on the
125 propriety of going, and her own tender love for all her three children
126 determined her afterwards to stay, and for their sakes avoid a breach
127 with their brother.
128
129 Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was so effectual, possessed
130 a strength of understanding, and coolness of judgment, which qualified
131 her, though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother, and
132 enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage of them all,
133 that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood which must generally have led
134 to imprudence. She had an excellent heart;--her disposition was
135 affectionate, and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
136 them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn; and which
137 one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
138
139 Marianne's abilities were, in many respects, quite equal to Elinor's.
140 She was sensible and clever; but eager in everything: her sorrows, her
141 joys, could have no moderation. She was generous, amiable,
142 interesting: she was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
143 her and her mother was strikingly great.
144
145 Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her sister's sensibility; but
146 by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued and cherished. They encouraged each
147 other now in the violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
148 which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed, was sought
149 for, was created again and again. They gave themselves up wholly to
150 their sorrow, seeking increase of wretchedness in every reflection that
151 could afford it, and resolved against ever admitting consolation in
152 future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still she could
153 struggle, she could exert herself. She could consult with her brother,
154 could receive her sister-in-law on her arrival, and treat her with
155 proper attention; and could strive to rouse her mother to similar
156 exertion, and encourage her to similar forbearance.
157
158 Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored, well-disposed girl; but
159 as she had already imbibed a good deal of Marianne's romance, without
160 having much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair to equal
161 her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
162
163
164
165 CHAPTER 2
166
167
168 Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress of Norland; and her
169 mother and sisters-in-law were degraded to the condition of visitors.
170 As such, however, they were treated by her with quiet civility; and by
171 her husband with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
172 beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really pressed them,
173 with some earnestness, to consider Norland as their home; and, as no
174 plan appeared so eligible to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she
175 could accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood, his
176 invitation was accepted.
177
178 A continuance in a place where everything reminded her of former
179 delight, was exactly what suited her mind. In seasons of cheerfulness,
180 no temper could be more cheerful than hers, or possess, in a greater
181 degree, that sanguine expectation of happiness which is happiness
182 itself. But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
183 and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was beyond alloy.
184
185 Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her husband intended
186 to do for his sisters. To take three thousand pounds from the fortune
187 of their dear little boy would be impoverishing him to the most
188 dreadful degree. She begged him to think again on the subject. How
189 could he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only child too,
190 of so large a sum? And what possible claim could the Miss Dashwoods,
191 who were related to him only by half blood, which she considered as no
192 relationship at all, have on his generosity to so large an amount. It
193 was very well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
194 between the children of any man by different marriages; and why was he
195 to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry, by giving away all his
196 money to his half sisters?
197
198 "It was my father's last request to me," replied her husband, "that I
199 should assist his widow and daughters."
200
201 "He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say; ten to one but he
202 was light-headed at the time. Had he been in his right senses, he
203 could not have thought of such a thing as begging you to give away half
204 your fortune from your own child."
205
206 "He did not stipulate for any particular sum, my dear Fanny; he only
207 requested me, in general terms, to assist them, and make their
208 situation more comfortable than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it
209 would have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself. He could
210 hardly suppose I should neglect them. But as he required the promise,
211 I could not do less than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
212 The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed. Something
213 must be done for them whenever they leave Norland and settle in a new
214 home."
215
216 "Well, then, LET something be done for them; but THAT something need
217 not be three thousand pounds. Consider," she added, "that when the
218 money is once parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will
219 marry, and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could be restored
220 to our poor little boy--"
221
222 "Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely, "that would make
223 great difference. The time may come when Harry will regret that so
224 large a sum was parted with. If he should have a numerous family, for
225 instance, it would be a very convenient addition."
226
227 "To be sure it would."
228
229 "Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties, if the sum were
230 diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds would be a prodigious
231 increase to their fortunes!"
232
233 "Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth would do half so
234 much for his sisters, even if REALLY his sisters! And as it is--only
235 half blood!--But you have such a generous spirit!"
236
237 "I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied. "One had rather,
238 on such occasions, do too much than too little. No one, at least, can
239 think I have not done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
240 expect more."
241
242 "There is no knowing what THEY may expect," said the lady, "but we are
243 not to think of their expectations: the question is, what you can
244 afford to do."
245
246 "Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five hundred pounds
247 a-piece. As it is, without any addition of mine, they will each have
248 about three thousand pounds on their mother's death--a very comfortable
249 fortune for any young woman."
250
251 "To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that they can want no
252 addition at all. They will have ten thousand pounds divided amongst
253 them. If they marry, they will be sure of doing well, and if they do
254 not, they may all live very comfortably together on the interest of ten
255 thousand pounds."
256
257 "That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether, upon the
258 whole, it would not be more advisable to do something for their mother
259 while she lives, rather than for them--something of the annuity kind I
260 mean.--My sisters would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
261 A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
262
263 His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving her consent to this
264 plan.
265
266 "To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with fifteen hundred
267 pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood should live fifteen years
268 we shall be completely taken in."
269
270 "Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot be worth half that
271 purchase."
272
273 "Certainly not; but if you observe, people always live for ever when
274 there is an annuity to be paid them; and she is very stout and healthy,
275 and hardly forty. An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
276 and over every year, and there is no getting rid of it. You are not
277 aware of what you are doing. I have known a great deal of the trouble
278 of annuities; for my mother was clogged with the payment of three to
279 old superannuated servants by my father's will, and it is amazing how
280 disagreeable she found it. Twice every year these annuities were to be
281 paid; and then there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then
282 one of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned out to be
283 no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it. Her income was not her
284 own, she said, with such perpetual claims on it; and it was the more
285 unkind in my father, because, otherwise, the money would have been
286 entirely at my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever. It
287 has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am sure I would
288 not pin myself down to the payment of one for all the world."
289
290 "It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood, "to have
291 those kind of yearly drains on one's income. One's fortune, as your
292 mother justly says, is NOT one's own. To be tied down to the regular
293 payment of such a sum, on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it
294 takes away one's independence."
295
296 "Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it. They think
297 themselves secure, you do no more than what is expected, and it raises
298 no gratitude at all. If I were you, whatever I did should be done at
299 my own discretion entirely. I would not bind myself to allow them any
300 thing yearly. It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a
301 hundred, or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
302
303 "I believe you are right, my love; it will be better that there should
304 be no annuity in the case; whatever I may give them occasionally will
305 be of far greater assistance than a yearly allowance, because they
306 would only enlarge their style of living if they felt sure of a larger
307 income, and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end of the
308 year. It will certainly be much the best way. A present of fifty
309 pounds, now and then, will prevent their ever being distressed for
310 money, and will, I think, be amply discharging my promise to my father."
311
312 "To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth, I am convinced within
313 myself that your father had no idea of your giving them any money at
314 all. The assistance he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might
315 be reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking out for a
316 comfortable small house for them, helping them to move their things,
317 and sending them presents of fish and game, and so forth, whenever they
318 are in season. I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
319 it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did. Do but consider,
320 my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively comfortable your mother-in-law
321 and her daughters may live on the interest of seven thousand pounds,
322 besides the thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which
323 brings them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course, they will
324 pay their mother for their board out of it. Altogether, they will have
325 five hundred a-year amongst them, and what on earth can four women want
326 for more than that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
327 be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses, and hardly
328 any servants; they will keep no company, and can have no expenses of
329 any kind! Only conceive how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a
330 year! I am sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it; and as
331 to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think of it. They will
332 be much more able to give YOU something."
333
334 "Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you are perfectly right.
335 My father certainly could mean nothing more by his request to me than
336 what you say. I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
337 my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness to them as you
338 have described. When my mother removes into another house my services
339 shall be readily given to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little
340 present of furniture too may be acceptable then."
341
342 "Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however, ONE thing
343 must be considered. When your father and mother moved to Norland,
344 though the furniture of Stanhill was sold, all the china, plate, and
345 linen was saved, and is now left to your mother. Her house will
346 therefore be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
347
348 "That is a material consideration undoubtedly. A valuable legacy
349 indeed! And yet some of the plate would have been a very pleasant
350 addition to our own stock here."
351
352 "Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice as handsome as what
353 belongs to this house. A great deal too handsome, in my opinion, for
354 any place THEY can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
355 Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this: that you owe no
356 particular gratitude to him, nor attention to his wishes; for we very
357 well know that if he could, he would have left almost everything in the
358 world to THEM."
359
360 This argument was irresistible. It gave to his intentions whatever of
361 decision was wanting before; and he finally resolved, that it would be
362 absolutely unnecessary, if not highly indecorous, to do more for the
363 widow and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly acts as
364 his own wife pointed out.
365
366
367
368 CHAPTER 3
369
370
371 Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months; not from any
372 disinclination to move when the sight of every well known spot ceased
373 to raise the violent emotion which it produced for a while; for when
374 her spirits began to revive, and her mind became capable of some other
375 exertion than that of heightening its affliction by melancholy
376 remembrances, she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her
377 inquiries for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland; for
378 to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible. But she could
379 hear of no situation that at once answered her notions of comfort and
380 ease, and suited the prudence of her eldest daughter, whose steadier
381 judgment rejected several houses as too large for their income, which
382 her mother would have approved.
383
384 Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the solemn promise on
385 the part of his son in their favour, which gave comfort to his last
386 earthly reflections. She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no
387 more than he had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her
388 daughters' sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
389 persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would support her in
390 affluence. For their brother's sake, too, for the sake of his own
391 heart, she rejoiced; and she reproached herself for being unjust to his
392 merit before, in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
393 behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that their welfare
394 was dear to him, and, for a long time, she firmly relied on the
395 liberality of his intentions.
396
397 The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance, felt for
398 her daughter-in-law, was very much increased by the farther knowledge
399 of her character, which half a year's residence in her family afforded;
400 and perhaps in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
401 affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might have found it
402 impossible to have lived together so long, had not a particular
403 circumstance occurred to give still greater eligibility, according to
404 the opinions of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
405
406 This circumstance was a growing attachment between her eldest girl and
407 the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood, a gentleman-like and pleasing young
408 man, who was introduced to their acquaintance soon after his sister's
409 establishment at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part of
410 his time there.
411
412 Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from motives of
413 interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son of a man who had died
414 very rich; and some might have repressed it from motives of prudence,
415 for, except a trifling sum, the whole of his fortune depended on the
416 will of his mother. But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either
417 consideration. It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
418 that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned the partiality.
419 It was contrary to every doctrine of hers that difference of fortune
420 should keep any couple asunder who were attracted by resemblance of
421 disposition; and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged by
422 every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
423
424 Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good opinion by any
425 peculiar graces of person or address. He was not handsome, and his
426 manners required intimacy to make them pleasing. He was too diffident
427 to do justice to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
428 his behaviour gave every indication of an open, affectionate heart.
429 His understanding was good, and his education had given it solid
430 improvement. But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition to
431 answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed to see him
432 distinguished--as--they hardly knew what. They wanted him to make a
433 fine figure in the world in some manner or other. His mother wished to
434 interest him in political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to
435 see him connected with some of the great men of the day. Mrs. John
436 Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while, till one of these
437 superior blessings could be attained, it would have quieted her
438 ambition to see him driving a barouche. But Edward had no turn for
439 great men or barouches. All his wishes centered in domestic comfort
440 and the quiet of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
441 who was more promising.
442
443 Edward had been staying several weeks in the house before he engaged
444 much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention; for she was, at that time, in such
445 affliction as rendered her careless of surrounding objects. She saw
446 only that he was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it. He
447 did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by ill-timed conversation.
448 She was first called to observe and approve him farther, by a
449 reflection which Elinor chanced one day to make on the difference
450 between him and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
451 most forcibly to her mother.
452
453 "It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike Fanny is enough.
454 It implies everything amiable. I love him already."
455
456 "I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you know more of him."
457
458 "Like him!" replied her mother with a smile. "I feel no sentiment of
459 approbation inferior to love."
460
461 "You may esteem him."
462
463 "I have never yet known what it was to separate esteem and love."
464
465 Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him. Her manners
466 were attaching, and soon banished his reserve. She speedily
467 comprehended all his merits; the persuasion of his regard for Elinor
468 perhaps assisted her penetration; but she really felt assured of his
469 worth: and even that quietness of manner, which militated against all
470 her established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be, was no
471 longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be warm and his temper
472 affectionate.
473
474 No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love in his behaviour to
475 Elinor, than she considered their serious attachment as certain, and
476 looked forward to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
477
478 "In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she, "Elinor will, in all
479 probability be settled for life. We shall miss her; but SHE will be
480 happy."
481
482 "Oh! Mama, how shall we do without her?"
483
484 "My love, it will be scarcely a separation. We shall live within a few
485 miles of each other, and shall meet every day of our lives. You will
486 gain a brother, a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest
487 opinion in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave, Marianne;
488 do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
489
490 "Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it with some surprise.
491 Edward is very amiable, and I love him tenderly. But yet--he is not
492 the kind of young man--there is something wanting--his figure is not
493 striking; it has none of that grace which I should expect in the man
494 who could seriously attach my sister. His eyes want all that spirit,
495 that fire, which at once announce virtue and intelligence. And besides
496 all this, I am afraid, Mama, he has no real taste. Music seems
497 scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's drawings very
498 much, it is not the admiration of a person who can understand their
499 worth. It is evident, in spite of his frequent attention to her while
500 she draws, that in fact he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as
501 a lover, not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters must be
502 united. I could not be happy with a man whose taste did not in every
503 point coincide with my own. He must enter into all my feelings; the
504 same books, the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how
505 spiritless, how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
506 I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it with so much
507 composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it. I could hardly keep my
508 seat. To hear those beautiful lines which have frequently almost
509 driven me wild, pronounced with such impenetrable calmness, such
510 dreadful indifference!"
511
512 "He would certainly have done more justice to simple and elegant prose.
513 I thought so at the time; but you WOULD give him Cowper."
514
515 "Nay, Mama, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--but we must allow
516 for difference of taste. Elinor has not my feelings, and therefore she
517 may overlook it, and be happy with him. But it would have broke MY
518 heart, had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
519 Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced that I
520 shall never see a man whom I can really love. I require so much! He
521 must have all Edward's virtues, and his person and manners must
522 ornament his goodness with every possible charm."
523
524 "Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen. It is yet too early in
525 life to despair of such a happiness. Why should you be less fortunate
526 than your mother? In one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your
527 destiny be different from hers!"
528
529
530
531 CHAPTER 4
532
533
534 "What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne, "that Edward should have no
535 taste for drawing."
536
537 "No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should you think so? He
538 does not draw himself, indeed, but he has great pleasure in seeing the
539 performances of other people, and I assure you he is by no means
540 deficient in natural taste, though he has not had opportunities of
541 improving it. Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he
542 would have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment in such
543 matters so much, that he is always unwilling to give his opinion on any
544 picture; but he has an innate propriety and simplicity of taste, which
545 in general direct him perfectly right."
546
547 Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more on the subject; but
548 the kind of approbation which Elinor described as excited in him by the
549 drawings of other people, was very far from that rapturous delight,
550 which, in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
551 smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured her sister for that
552 blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
553
554 "I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not consider him as
555 deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think I may say that you cannot,
556 for your behaviour to him is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your
557 opinion, I am sure you could never be civil to him."
558
559 Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would not wound the feelings of
560 her sister on any account, and yet to say what she did not believe was
561 impossible. At length she replied:
562
563 "Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him is not in every thing
564 equal to your sense of his merits. I have not had so many
565 opportunities of estimating the minuter propensities of his mind, his
566 inclinations and tastes, as you have; but I have the highest opinion in
567 the world of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
568 worthy and amiable."
569
570 "I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile, "that his dearest friends
571 could not be dissatisfied with such commendation as that. I do not
572 perceive how you could express yourself more warmly."
573
574 Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
575
576 "Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor, "no one can, I
577 think, be in doubt, who has seen him often enough to engage him in
578 unreserved conversation. The excellence of his understanding and his
579 principles can be concealed only by that shyness which too often keeps
580 him silent. You know enough of him to do justice to his solid worth.
581 But of his minuter propensities, as you call them you have from
582 peculiar circumstances been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I
583 have been at times thrown a good deal together, while you have been
584 wholly engrossed on the most affectionate principle by my mother. I
585 have seen a great deal of him, have studied his sentiments and heard
586 his opinion on subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole, I
587 venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed, enjoyment of books
588 exceedingly great, his imagination lively, his observation just and
589 correct, and his taste delicate and pure. His abilities in every
590 respect improve as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
591 At first sight, his address is certainly not striking; and his person
592 can hardly be called handsome, till the expression of his eyes, which
593 are uncommonly good, and the general sweetness of his countenance, is
594 perceived. At present, I know him so well, that I think him really
595 handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you, Marianne?"
596
597 "I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I do not now. When
598 you tell me to love him as a brother, I shall no more see imperfection
599 in his face, than I now do in his heart."
600
601 Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for the warmth she
602 had been betrayed into, in speaking of him. She felt that Edward stood
603 very high in her opinion. She believed the regard to be mutual; but
604 she required greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction of
605 their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that what Marianne and her
606 mother conjectured one moment, they believed the next--that with them,
607 to wish was to hope, and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain
608 the real state of the case to her sister.
609
610 "I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think very highly of
611 him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
612
613 Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
614
615 "Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh! worse than
616 cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise. Use those words again, and I
617 will leave the room this moment."
618
619 Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me," said she; "and be assured
620 that I meant no offence to you, by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my
621 own feelings. Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
622 believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the suspicion--the
623 hope of his affection for me may warrant, without imprudence or folly.
624 But farther than this you must not believe. I am by no means assured
625 of his regard for me. There are moments when the extent of it seems
626 doubtful; and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder at
627 my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality, by
628 believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart I feel
629 little--scarcely any doubt of his preference. But there are other
630 points to be considered besides his inclination. He is very far from
631 being independent. What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from
632 Fanny's occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have never
633 been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very much mistaken if
634 Edward is not himself aware that there would be many difficulties in
635 his way, if he were to wish to marry a woman who had not either a great
636 fortune or high rank."
637
638 Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination of her mother
639 and herself had outstripped the truth.
640
641 "And you really are not engaged to him!" said she. "Yet it certainly
642 soon will happen. But two advantages will proceed from this delay. I
643 shall not lose you so soon, and Edward will have greater opportunity of
644 improving that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must be
645 so indispensably necessary to your future felicity. Oh! if he should
646 be so far stimulated by your genius as to learn to draw himself, how
647 delightful it would be!"
648
649 Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister. She could not
650 consider her partiality for Edward in so prosperous a state as Marianne
651 had believed it. There was, at times, a want of spirits about him
652 which, if it did not denote indifference, spoke of something almost as
653 unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him to feel it, need not
654 give him more than inquietude. It would not be likely to produce that
655 dejection of mind which frequently attended him. A more reasonable
656 cause might be found in the dependent situation which forbade the
657 indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother neither behaved
658 to him so as to make his home comfortable at present, nor to give him
659 any assurance that he might form a home for himself, without strictly
660 attending to her views for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge
661 as this, it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject. She
662 was far from depending on that result of his preference of her, which
663 her mother and sister still considered as certain. Nay, the longer
664 they were together the more doubtful seemed the nature of his regard;
665 and sometimes, for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
666 than friendship.
667
668 But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough, when perceived
669 by his sister, to make her uneasy, and at the same time, (which was
670 still more common,) to make her uncivil. She took the first
671 opportunity of affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
672 her so expressively of her brother's great expectations, of Mrs.
673 Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should marry well, and of the
674 danger attending any young woman who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that
675 Mrs. Dashwood could neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to
676 be calm. She gave her an answer which marked her contempt, and
677 instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might be the
678 inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal, her beloved Elinor
679 should not be exposed another week to such insinuations.
680
681 In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered to her from the
682 post, which contained a proposal particularly well timed. It was the
683 offer of a small house, on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of
684 her own, a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire. The
685 letter was from this gentleman himself, and written in the true spirit
686 of friendly accommodation. He understood that she was in need of a
687 dwelling; and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
688 he assured her that everything should be done to it which she might
689 think necessary, if the situation pleased her. He earnestly pressed
690 her, after giving the particulars of the house and garden, to come with
691 her daughters to Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from
692 whence she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the houses
693 were in the same parish, could, by any alteration, be made comfortable
694 to her. He seemed really anxious to accommodate them and the whole of
695 his letter was written in so friendly a style as could not fail of
696 giving pleasure to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
697 suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her nearer
698 connections. She needed no time for deliberation or inquiry. Her
699 resolution was formed as she read. The situation of Barton, in a
700 county so far distant from Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours
701 before, would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
702 possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its first
703 recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland was no longer an
704 evil; it was an object of desire; it was a blessing, in comparison of
705 the misery of continuing her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for
706 ever from that beloved place would be less painful than to inhabit or
707 visit it while such a woman was its mistress. She instantly wrote Sir
708 John Middleton her acknowledgment of his kindness, and her acceptance
709 of his proposal; and then hastened to shew both letters to her
710 daughters, that she might be secure of their approbation before her
711 answer were sent.
712
713 Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent for them to settle
714 at some distance from Norland, than immediately amongst their present
715 acquaintance. On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
716 her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire. The house, too, as
717 described by Sir John, was on so simple a scale, and the rent so
718 uncommonly moderate, as to leave her no right of objection on either
719 point; and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought any charm
720 to her fancy, though it was a removal from the vicinity of Norland
721 beyond her wishes, she made no attempt to dissuade her mother from
722 sending a letter of acquiescence.
723
724
725
726 CHAPTER 5
727
728
729 No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood indulged herself
730 in the pleasure of announcing to her son-in-law and his wife that she
731 was provided with a house, and should incommode them no longer than till
732 every thing were ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with
733 surprise. Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly hoped
734 that she would not be settled far from Norland. She had great
735 satisfaction in replying that she was going into Devonshire.--Edward
736 turned hastily towards her, on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise
737 and concern, which required no explanation to her, repeated,
738 "Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence! And to
739 what part of it?" She explained the situation. It was within four miles
740 northward of Exeter.
741
742 "It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope to see many of my
743 friends in it. A room or two can easily be added; and if my friends
744 find no difficulty in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will
745 find none in accommodating them."
746
747 She concluded with a very kind invitation to Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood
748 to visit her at Barton; and to Edward she gave one with still greater
749 affection. Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
750 made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than was
751 unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect on her in that
752 point to which it principally tended. To separate Edward and Elinor
753 was as far from being her object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs.
754 John Dashwood, by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally
755 she disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
756
757 Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again how exceedingly sorry
758 he was that she had taken a house at such a distance from Norland as to
759 prevent his being of any service to her in removing her furniture. He
760 really felt conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very
761 exertion to which he had limited the performance of his promise to his
762 father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.-- The furniture
763 was all sent around by water. It chiefly consisted of household linen,
764 plate, china, and books, with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's.
765 Mrs. John Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could not
766 help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income would be so
767 trifling in comparison with their own, she should have any handsome
768 article of furniture.
769
770 Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was ready furnished,
771 and she might have immediate possession. No difficulty arose on either
772 side in the agreement; and she waited only for the disposal of her
773 effects at Norland, and to determine her future household, before she
774 set off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid in the
775 performance of everything that interested her, was soon done.--The
776 horses which were left her by her husband had been sold soon after his
777 death, and an opportunity now offering of disposing of her carriage,
778 she agreed to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her eldest
779 daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she consulted only her
780 own wishes, she would have kept it; but the discretion of Elinor
781 prevailed. HER wisdom too limited the number of their servants to
782 three; two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided from
783 amongst those who had formed their establishment at Norland.
784
785 The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately into Devonshire,
786 to prepare the house for their mistress's arrival; for as Lady
787 Middleton was entirely unknown to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going
788 directly to the cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she
789 relied so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house, as to
790 feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she entered it as her own.
791 Her eagerness to be gone from Norland was preserved from diminution by
792 the evident satisfaction of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her
793 removal; a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
794 under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure. Now was the
795 time when her son-in-law's promise to his father might with particular
796 propriety be fulfilled. Since he had neglected to do it on first
797 coming to the estate, their quitting his house might be looked on as
798 the most suitable period for its accomplishment. But Mrs. Dashwood
799 began shortly to give over every hope of the kind, and to be convinced,
800 from the general drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended
801 no farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland. He so
802 frequently talked of the increasing expenses of housekeeping, and of
803 the perpetual demands upon his purse, which a man of any consequence in
804 the world was beyond calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to
805 stand in need of more money himself than to have any design of giving
806 money away.
807
808 In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir John Middleton's
809 first letter to Norland, every thing was so far settled in their future
810 abode as to enable Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their
811 journey.
812
813 Many were the tears shed by them in their last adieus to a place so
814 much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!" said Marianne, as she wandered
815 alone before the house, on the last evening of their being there; "when
816 shall I cease to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
817 happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing you from this
818 spot, from whence perhaps I may view you no more!--And you, ye
819 well-known trees!--but you will continue the same.--No leaf will decay
820 because we are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
821 can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same; unconscious
822 of the pleasure or the regret you occasion, and insensible of any
823 change in those who walk under your shade!--But who will remain to
824 enjoy you?"
825
826
827
828 CHAPTER 6
829
830
831 The first part of their journey was performed in too melancholy a
832 disposition to be otherwise than tedious and unpleasant. But as they
833 drew towards the end of it, their interest in the appearance of a
834 country which they were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view
835 of Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness. It was a
836 pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich in pasture. After winding
837 along it for more than a mile, they reached their own house. A small
838 green court was the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket
839 gate admitted them into it.
840
841 As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable and compact;
842 but as a cottage it was defective, for the building was regular, the
843 roof was tiled, the window shutters were not painted green, nor were
844 the walls covered with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly
845 through the house into the garden behind. On each side of the entrance
846 was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square; and beyond them were the
847 offices and the stairs. Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest
848 of the house. It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
849 In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but the tears
850 which recollection called forth as they entered the house were soon
851 dried away. They were cheered by the joy of the servants on their
852 arrival, and each for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
853 It was very early in September; the season was fine, and from first
854 seeing the place under the advantage of good weather, they received an
855 impression in its favour which was of material service in recommending
856 it to their lasting approbation.
857
858 The situation of the house was good. High hills rose immediately
859 behind, and at no great distance on each side; some of which were open
860 downs, the others cultivated and woody. The village of Barton was
861 chiefly on one of these hills, and formed a pleasant view from the
862 cottage windows. The prospect in front was more extensive; it
863 commanded the whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
864 The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated the valley in that
865 direction; under another name, and in another course, it branched out
866 again between two of the steepest of them.
867
868 With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood was upon the
869 whole well satisfied; for though her former style of life rendered many
870 additions to the latter indispensable, yet to add and improve was a
871 delight to her; and she had at this time ready money enough to supply
872 all that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments. "As for the
873 house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is too small for our family,
874 but we will make ourselves tolerably comfortable for the present, as it
875 is too late in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring, if I
876 have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may think about
877 building. These parlors are both too small for such parties of our
878 friends as I hope to see often collected here; and I have some thoughts
879 of throwing the passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the
880 other, and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance; this,
881 with a new drawing room which may be easily added, and a bed-chamber
882 and garret above, will make it a very snug little cottage. I could
883 wish the stairs were handsome. But one must not expect every thing;
884 though I suppose it would be no difficult matter to widen them. I
885 shall see how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring, and
886 we will plan our improvements accordingly."
887
888 In the mean time, till all these alterations could be made from the
889 savings of an income of five hundred a-year by a woman who never saved
890 in her life, they were wise enough to be contented with the house as it
891 was; and each of them was busy in arranging their particular concerns,
892 and endeavoring, by placing around them books and other possessions, to
893 form themselves a home. Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and
894 properly disposed of; and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls
895 of their sitting room.
896
897 In such employments as these they were interrupted soon after breakfast
898 the next day by the entrance of their landlord, who called to welcome
899 them to Barton, and to offer them every accommodation from his own
900 house and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient. Sir
901 John Middleton was a good looking man about forty. He had formerly
902 visited at Stanhill, but it was too long for his young cousins to
903 remember him. His countenance was thoroughly good-humoured; and his
904 manners were as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
905 seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort to be an
906 object of real solicitude to him. He said much of his earnest desire
907 of their living in the most sociable terms with his family, and pressed
908 them so cordially to dine at Barton Park every day till they were
909 better settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried to a
910 point of perseverance beyond civility, they could not give offence.
911 His kindness was not confined to words; for within an hour after he
912 left them, a large basket full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from
913 the park, which was followed before the end of the day by a present of
914 game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their letters to and
915 from the post for them, and would not be denied the satisfaction of
916 sending them his newspaper every day.
917
918 Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him, denoting her
919 intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as she could be assured
920 that her visit would be no inconvenience; and as this message was
921 answered by an invitation equally polite, her ladyship was introduced
922 to them the next day.
923
924 They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on whom so much of
925 their comfort at Barton must depend; and the elegance of her appearance
926 was favourable to their wishes. Lady Middleton was not more than six
927 or seven and twenty; her face was handsome, her figure tall and
928 striking, and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
929 which her husband's wanted. But they would have been improved by some
930 share of his frankness and warmth; and her visit was long enough to
931 detract something from their first admiration, by shewing that, though
932 perfectly well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say for
933 herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
934
935 Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John was very chatty, and
936 Lady Middleton had taken the wise precaution of bringing with her their
937 eldest child, a fine little boy about six years old, by which means
938 there was one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case of
939 extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age, admire his beauty,
940 and ask him questions which his mother answered for him, while he hung
941 about her and held down his head, to the great surprise of her
942 ladyship, who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he could
943 make noise enough at home. On every formal visit a child ought to be
944 of the party, by way of provision for discourse. In the present case
945 it took up ten minutes to determine whether the boy were most like his
946 father or mother, and in what particular he resembled either, for of
947 course every body differed, and every body was astonished at the
948 opinion of the others.
949
950 An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods of debating on the
951 rest of the children, as Sir John would not leave the house without
952 securing their promise of dining at the park the next day.
953
954
955
956 CHAPTER 7
957
958
959 Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage. The ladies had
960 passed near it in their way along the valley, but it was screened from
961 their view at home by the projection of a hill. The house was large
962 and handsome; and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
963 and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification, the latter
964 for that of his lady. They were scarcely ever without some friends
965 staying with them in the house, and they kept more company of every
966 kind than any other family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to
967 the happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper and outward
968 behaviour, they strongly resembled each other in that total want of
969 talent and taste which confined their employments, unconnected with
970 such as society produced, within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a
971 sportsman, Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
972 humoured her children; and these were their only resources. Lady
973 Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her children all the
974 year round, while Sir John's independent employments were in existence
975 only half the time. Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
976 supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education; supported the
977 good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise to the good breeding of his
978 wife.
979
980 Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance of her table, and of
981 all her domestic arrangements; and from this kind of vanity was her
982 greatest enjoyment in any of their parties. But Sir John's
983 satisfaction in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
984 about him more young people than his house would hold, and the noisier
985 they were the better was he pleased. He was a blessing to all the
986 juvenile part of the neighbourhood, for in summer he was for ever
987 forming parties to eat cold ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter
988 his private balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
989 suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
990
991 The arrival of a new family in the country was always a matter of joy
992 to him, and in every point of view he was charmed with the inhabitants
993 he had now procured for his cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were
994 young, pretty, and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good
995 opinion; for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could want to
996 make her mind as captivating as her person. The friendliness of his
997 disposition made him happy in accommodating those, whose situation
998 might be considered, in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In
999 showing kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
1000 of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only in his
1001 cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman; for a sportsman,
1002 though he esteems only those of his sex who are sportsmen likewise, is
1003 not often desirous of encouraging their taste by admitting them to a
1004 residence within his own manor.
1005
1006 Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door of the house by
1007 Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton Park with unaffected sincerity;
1008 and as he attended them to the drawing room repeated to the young
1009 ladies the concern which the same subject had drawn from him the day
1010 before, at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them. They
1011 would see, he said, only one gentleman there besides himself; a
1012 particular friend who was staying at the park, but who was neither very
1013 young nor very gay. He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of
1014 the party, and could assure them it should never happen so again. He
1015 had been to several families that morning in hopes of procuring some
1016 addition to their number, but it was moonlight and every body was full
1017 of engagements. Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
1018 within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful agreeable woman,
1019 he hoped the young ladies would not find it so very dull as they might
1020 imagine. The young ladies, as well as their mother, were perfectly
1021 satisfied with having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
1022 no more.
1023
1024 Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a good-humoured, merry,
1025 fat, elderly woman, who talked a great deal, seemed very happy, and
1026 rather vulgar. She was full of jokes and laughter, and before dinner
1027 was over had said many witty things on the subject of lovers and
1028 husbands; hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
1029 and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not. Marianne was
1030 vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned her eyes towards Elinor
1031 to see how she bore these attacks, with an earnestness which gave
1032 Elinor far more pain than could arise from such common-place raillery
1033 as Mrs. Jennings's.
1034
1035 Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no more adapted by
1036 resemblance of manner to be his friend, than Lady Middleton was to be
1037 his wife, or Mrs. Jennings to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was
1038 silent and grave. His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
1039 of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret an absolute old
1040 bachelor, for he was on the wrong side of five and thirty; but though
1041 his face was not handsome, his countenance was sensible, and his
1042 address was particularly gentlemanlike.
1043
1044 There was nothing in any of the party which could recommend them as
1045 companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold insipidity of Lady Middleton
1046 was so particularly repulsive, that in comparison of it the gravity of
1047 Colonel Brandon, and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
1048 mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed to be roused to
1049 enjoyment only by the entrance of her four noisy children after dinner,
1050 who pulled her about, tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of
1051 discourse except what related to themselves.
1052
1053 In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical, she was
1054 invited to play. The instrument was unlocked, every body prepared to
1055 be charmed, and Marianne, who sang very well, at their request went
1056 through the chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
1057 the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain ever since in
1058 the same position on the pianoforte, for her ladyship had celebrated
1059 that event by giving up music, although by her mother's account, she
1060 had played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
1061
1062 Marianne's performance was highly applauded. Sir John was loud in his
1063 admiration at the end of every song, and as loud in his conversation
1064 with the others while every song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently
1065 called him to order, wondered how any one's attention could be diverted
1066 from music for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
1067 which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone, of all the
1068 party, heard her without being in raptures. He paid her only the
1069 compliment of attention; and she felt a respect for him on the
1070 occasion, which the others had reasonably forfeited by their shameless
1071 want of taste. His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
1072 ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own, was
1073 estimable when contrasted against the horrible insensibility of the
1074 others; and she was reasonable enough to allow that a man of five and
1075 thirty might well have outlived all acuteness of feeling and every
1076 exquisite power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make every
1077 allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life which humanity
1078 required.
1079
1080
1081
1082 CHAPTER 8
1083
1084
1085 Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure. She had only two
1086 daughters, both of whom she had lived to see respectably married, and
1087 she had now therefore nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the
1088 world. In the promotion of this object she was zealously active, as
1089 far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity of projecting
1090 weddings among all the young people of her acquaintance. She was
1091 remarkably quick in the discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the
1092 advantage of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young lady by
1093 insinuations of her power over such a young man; and this kind of
1094 discernment enabled her soon after her arrival at Barton decisively to
1095 pronounce that Colonel Brandon was very much in love with Marianne
1096 Dashwood. She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first evening
1097 of their being together, from his listening so attentively while she
1098 sang to them; and when the visit was returned by the Middletons' dining
1099 at the cottage, the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
1100 It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it. It would be an
1101 excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE was handsome. Mrs. Jennings
1102 had been anxious to see Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her
1103 connection with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge; and she
1104 was always anxious to get a good husband for every pretty girl.
1105
1106 The immediate advantage to herself was by no means inconsiderable, for
1107 it supplied her with endless jokes against them both. At the park she
1108 laughed at the colonel, and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former
1109 her raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
1110 perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at first
1111 incomprehensible; and when its object was understood, she hardly knew
1112 whether most to laugh at its absurdity, or censure its impertinence,
1113 for she considered it as an unfeeling reflection on the colonel's
1114 advanced years, and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
1115
1116 Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years younger than
1117 herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared to the youthful fancy of
1118 her daughter, ventured to clear Mrs. Jennings from the probability of
1119 wishing to throw ridicule on his age.
1120
1121 "But at least, Mama, you cannot deny the absurdity of the accusation,
1122 though you may not think it intentionally ill-natured. Colonel Brandon
1123 is certainly younger than Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY
1124 father; and if he were ever animated enough to be in love, must have
1125 long outlived every sensation of the kind. It is too ridiculous! When
1126 is a man to be safe from such wit, if age and infirmity will not
1127 protect him?"
1128
1129 "Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon infirm? I can
1130 easily suppose that his age may appear much greater to you than to my
1131 mother; but you can hardly deceive yourself as to his having the use of
1132 his limbs!"
1133
1134 "Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism? and is not that the
1135 commonest infirmity of declining life?"
1136
1137 "My dearest child," said her mother, laughing, "at this rate you must
1138 be in continual terror of MY decay; and it must seem to you a miracle
1139 that my life has been extended to the advanced age of forty."
1140
1141 "Mama, you are not doing me justice. I know very well that Colonel
1142 Brandon is not old enough to make his friends yet apprehensive of
1143 losing him in the course of nature. He may live twenty years longer.
1144 But thirty-five has nothing to do with matrimony."
1145
1146 "Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had better not have
1147 any thing to do with matrimony together. But if there should by any
1148 chance happen to be a woman who is single at seven and twenty, I should
1149 not think Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
1150 marrying HER."
1151
1152 "A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne, after pausing a moment,
1153 "can never hope to feel or inspire affection again, and if her home be
1154 uncomfortable, or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might bring
1155 herself to submit to the offices of a nurse, for the sake of the
1156 provision and security of a wife. In his marrying such a woman
1157 therefore there would be nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of
1158 convenience, and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would be
1159 no marriage at all, but that would be nothing. To me it would seem
1160 only a commercial exchange, in which each wished to be benefited at the
1161 expense of the other."
1162
1163 "It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor, "to convince you that
1164 a woman of seven and twenty could feel for a man of thirty-five
1165 anything near enough to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
1166 But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and his wife to the
1167 constant confinement of a sick chamber, merely because he chanced to
1168 complain yesterday (a very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in
1169 one of his shoulders."
1170
1171 "But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne; "and with me a
1172 flannel waistcoat is invariably connected with aches, cramps,
1173 rheumatisms, and every species of ailment that can afflict the old and
1174 the feeble."
1175
1176 "Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not have despised him
1177 half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not there something interesting to
1178 you in the flushed cheek, hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
1179
1180 Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room, "Mama," said
1181 Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject of illness which I cannot
1182 conceal from you. I am sure Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now
1183 been here almost a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but
1184 real indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay. What else
1185 can detain him at Norland?"
1186
1187 "Had you any idea of his coming so soon?" said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had
1188 none. On the contrary, if I have felt any anxiety at all on the
1189 subject, it has been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want of
1190 pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation, when I talked of his
1191 coming to Barton. Does Elinor expect him already?"
1192
1193 "I have never mentioned it to her, but of course she must."
1194
1195 "I rather think you are mistaken, for when I was talking to her
1196 yesterday of getting a new grate for the spare bedchamber, she observed
1197 that there was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely that the
1198 room would be wanted for some time."
1199
1200 "How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it! But the whole of
1201 their behaviour to each other has been unaccountable! How cold, how
1202 composed were their last adieus! How languid their conversation the
1203 last evening of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
1204 distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes of an
1205 affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave them purposely
1206 together in the course of the last morning, and each time did he most
1207 unaccountably follow me out of the room. And Elinor, in quitting
1208 Norland and Edward, cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is
1209 invariable. When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try to
1210 avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied in it?"
1211
1212
1213
1214 CHAPTER 9
1215
1216
1217 The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable comfort to
1218 themselves. The house and the garden, with all the objects surrounding
1219 them, were now become familiar, and the ordinary pursuits which had
1220 given to Norland half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
1221 enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the loss of their
1222 father. Sir John Middleton, who called on them every day for the first
1223 fortnight, and who was not in the habit of seeing much occupation at
1224 home, could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
1225
1226 Their visitors, except those from Barton Park, were not many; for, in
1227 spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties that they would mix more in the
1228 neighbourhood, and repeated assurances of his carriage being always at
1229 their service, the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
1230 wish of society for her children; and she was resolute in declining to
1231 visit any family beyond the distance of a walk. There were but few who
1232 could be so classed; and it was not all of them that were attainable.
1233 About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow winding
1234 valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton, as formerly
1235 described, the girls had, in one of their earliest walks, discovered an
1236 ancient respectable looking mansion which, by reminding them a little
1237 of Norland, interested their imagination and made them wish to be
1238 better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry, that its
1239 possessor, an elderly lady of very good character, was unfortunately
1240 too infirm to mix with the world, and never stirred from home.
1241
1242 The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks. The high
1243 downs which invited them from almost every window of the cottage to
1244 seek the exquisite enjoyment of air on their summits, were a happy
1245 alternative when the dirt of the valleys beneath shut up their superior
1246 beauties; and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret one
1247 memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the partial sunshine
1248 of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear the confinement which the
1249 settled rain of the two preceding days had occasioned. The weather was
1250 not tempting enough to draw the two others from their pencil and their
1251 book, in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would be
1252 lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would be drawn off
1253 from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
1254
1255 They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own penetration at
1256 every glimpse of blue sky; and when they caught in their faces the
1257 animating gales of a high south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears
1258 which had prevented their mother and Elinor from sharing such
1259 delightful sensations.
1260
1261 "Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne, "superior to
1262 this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least two hours."
1263
1264 Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against the wind, resisting
1265 it with laughing delight for about twenty minutes longer, when suddenly
1266 the clouds united over their heads, and a driving rain set full in
1267 their face.-- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though
1268 unwillingly, to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own
1269 house. One consolation however remained for them, to which the
1270 exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety; it was that of
1271 running with all possible speed down the steep side of the hill which
1272 led immediately to their garden gate.
1273
1274 They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage, but a false step
1275 brought her suddenly to the ground; and Margaret, unable to stop
1276 herself to assist her, was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the
1277 bottom in safety.
1278
1279 A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers playing round him, was
1280 passing up the hill and within a few yards of Marianne, when her
1281 accident happened. He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She
1282 had raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been twisted in
1283 her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand. The gentleman offered
1284 his services; and perceiving that her modesty declined what her
1285 situation rendered necessary, took her up in his arms without farther
1286 delay, and carried her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
1287 the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her directly
1288 into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived, and quitted not his
1289 hold till he had seated her in a chair in the parlour.
1290
1291 Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at their entrance, and while
1292 the eyes of both were fixed on him with an evident wonder and a secret
1293 admiration which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized for
1294 his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner so frank and so
1295 graceful that his person, which was uncommonly handsome, received
1296 additional charms from his voice and expression. Had he been even old,
1297 ugly, and vulgar, the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
1298 have been secured by any act of attention to her child; but the
1299 influence of youth, beauty, and elegance, gave an interest to the
1300 action which came home to her feelings.
1301
1302 She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness of address which
1303 always attended her, invited him to be seated. But this he declined,
1304 as he was dirty and wet. Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she
1305 was obliged. His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
1306 home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would allow him the
1307 honour of calling tomorrow to enquire after Miss Dashwood. The honour
1308 was readily granted, and he then departed, to make himself still more
1309 interesting, in the midst of a heavy rain.
1310
1311 His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness were instantly the
1312 theme of general admiration, and the laugh which his gallantry raised
1313 against Marianne received particular spirit from his exterior
1314 attractions.-- Marianne herself had seen less of his Mama the
1315 rest, for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his lifting
1316 her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding him after their
1317 entering the house. But she had seen enough of him to join in all the
1318 admiration of the others, and with an energy which always adorned her
1319 praise. His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever drawn
1320 for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying her into the
1321 house with so little previous formality, there was a rapidity of
1322 thought which particularly recommended the action to her. Every
1323 circumstance belonging to him was interesting. His name was good, his
1324 residence was in their favourite village, and she soon found out that
1325 of all manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming. Her
1326 imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant, and the pain of a
1327 sprained ankle was disregarded.
1328
1329 Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval of fair weather
1330 that morning allowed him to get out of doors; and Marianne's accident
1331 being related to him, he was eagerly asked whether he knew any
1332 gentleman of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
1333
1334 "Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE in the country? That is good
1335 news however; I will ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on
1336 Thursday."
1337
1338 "You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
1339
1340 "Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here every year."
1341
1342 "And what sort of a young man is he?"
1343
1344 "As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you. A very decent
1345 shot, and there is not a bolder rider in England."
1346
1347 "And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne, indignantly.
1348 "But what are his manners on more intimate acquaintance? What his
1349 pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
1350
1351 Sir John was rather puzzled.
1352
1353 "Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him as to all THAT.
1354 But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow, and has got the nicest
1355 little black bitch of a pointer I ever saw. Was she out with him
1356 today?"
1357
1358 But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the colour of Mr.
1359 Willoughby's pointer, than he could describe to her the shades of his
1360 mind.
1361
1362 "But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come from? Has he a
1363 house at Allenham?"
1364
1365 On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence; and he
1366 told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property of his own in the
1367 country; that he resided there only while he was visiting the old lady
1368 at Allenham Court, to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
1369 to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth catching I can
1370 tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty little estate of his own in
1371 Somersetshire besides; and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
1372 younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills. Miss
1373 Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself. Brandon will
1374 be jealous, if she does not take care."
1375
1376 "I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a good humoured smile,
1377 "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded by the attempts of either of MY
1378 daughters towards what you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment
1379 to which they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us, let
1380 them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however, from what you say,
1381 that he is a respectable young man, and one whose acquaintance will not
1382 be ineligible."
1383
1384 "He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe, as ever lived," repeated
1385 Sir John. "I remember last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he
1386 danced from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
1387
1388 "Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes, "and with
1389 elegance, with spirit?"
1390
1391 "Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
1392
1393 "That is what I like; that is what a young man ought to be. Whatever
1394 be his pursuits, his eagerness in them should know no moderation, and
1395 leave him no sense of fatigue."
1396
1397 "Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see how it will be.
1398 You will be setting your cap at him now, and never think of poor
1399 Brandon."
1400
1401 "That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne, warmly, "which I
1402 particularly dislike. I abhor every common-place phrase by which wit
1403 is intended; and 'setting one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,'
1404 are the most odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal; and
1405 if their construction could ever be deemed clever, time has long ago
1406 destroyed all its ingenuity."
1407
1408 Sir John did not much understand this reproof; but he laughed as
1409 heartily as if he did, and then replied,
1410
1411 "Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say, one way or other.
1412 Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already, and he is very well worth
1413 setting your cap at, I can tell you, in spite of all this tumbling
1414 about and spraining of ankles."
1415
1416
1417
1418 CHAPTER 10
1419
1420
1421 Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance than precision,
1422 styled Willoughby, called at the cottage early the next morning to make
1423 his personal enquiries. He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more
1424 than politeness; with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and
1425 her own gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during the
1426 visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance, mutual affection,
1427 and domestic comfort of the family to whom accident had now introduced
1428 him. Of their personal charms he had not required a second interview
1429 to be convinced.
1430
1431 Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion, regular features, and a
1432 remarkably pretty figure. Marianne was still handsomer. Her form,
1433 though not so correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of
1434 height, was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when in the
1435 common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl, truth was less
1436 violently outraged than usually happens. Her skin was very brown, but,
1437 from its transparency, her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her
1438 features were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive; and in her
1439 eyes, which were very dark, there was a life, a spirit, an eagerness,
1440 which could hardily be seen without delight. From Willoughby their
1441 expression was at first held back, by the embarrassment which the
1442 remembrance of his assistance created. But when this passed away, when
1443 her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the perfect
1444 good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness and vivacity, and
1445 above all, when she heard him declare, that of music and dancing he was
1446 passionately fond, she gave him such a look of approbation as secured
1447 the largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest of his stay.
1448
1449 It was only necessary to mention any favourite amusement to engage her
1450 to talk. She could not be silent when such points were introduced, and
1451 she had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion. They speedily
1452 discovered that their enjoyment of dancing and music was mutual, and
1453 that it arose from a general conformity of judgment in all that related
1454 to either. Encouraged by this to a further examination of his
1455 opinions, she proceeded to question him on the subject of books; her
1456 favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt upon with so rapturous
1457 a delight, that any young man of five and twenty must have been
1458 insensible indeed, not to become an immediate convert to the excellence
1459 of such works, however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly
1460 alike. The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--or if
1461 any difference appeared, any objection arose, it lasted no longer than
1462 till the force of her arguments and the brightness of her eyes could be
1463 displayed. He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her
1464 enthusiasm; and long before his visit concluded, they conversed with
1465 the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
1466
1467 "Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them, "for ONE
1468 morning I think you have done pretty well. You have already
1469 ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in almost every matter of
1470 importance. You know what he thinks of Cowper and Scott; you are
1471 certain of his estimating their beauties as he ought, and you have
1472 received every assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
1473 But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
1474 extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse? You will soon
1475 have exhausted each favourite topic. Another meeting will suffice to
1476 explain his sentiments on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and
1477 then you can have nothing farther to ask."--
1478
1479 "Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this just? are my ideas so
1480 scanty? But I see what you mean. I have been too much at my ease, too
1481 happy, too frank. I have erred against every common-place notion of
1482 decorum; I have been open and sincere where I ought to have been
1483 reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had I talked only of the
1484 weather and the roads, and had I spoken only once in ten minutes, this
1485 reproach would have been spared."
1486
1487 "My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended with Elinor--she
1488 was only in jest. I should scold her myself, if she were capable of
1489 wishing to check the delight of your conversation with our new
1490 friend."-- Marianne was softened in a moment.
1491
1492 Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his pleasure in their
1493 acquaintance, which an evident wish of improving it could offer. He
1494 came to them every day. To enquire after Marianne was at first his
1495 excuse; but the encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
1496 greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it had ceased
1497 to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery. She was confined for
1498 some days to the house; but never had any confinement been less
1499 irksome. Willoughby was a young man of good abilities, quick
1500 imagination, lively spirits, and open, affectionate manners. He was
1501 exactly formed to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
1502 not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour of mind which was
1503 now roused and increased by the example of her own, and which
1504 recommended him to her affection beyond every thing else.
1505
1506 His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment. They read,
1507 they talked, they sang together; his musical talents were considerable;
1508 and he read with all the sensibility and spirit which Edward had
1509 unfortunately wanted.
1510
1511 In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless as in Marianne's; and
1512 Elinor saw nothing to censure in him but a propensity, in which he
1513 strongly resembled and peculiarly delighted her sister, of saying too
1514 much what he thought on every occasion, without attention to persons or
1515 circumstances. In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other
1516 people, in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment of undivided
1517 attention where his heart was engaged, and in slighting too easily the
1518 forms of worldly propriety, he displayed a want of caution which Elinor
1519 could not approve, in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in
1520 its support.
1521
1522 Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation which had seized
1523 her at sixteen and a half, of ever seeing a man who could satisfy her
1524 ideas of perfection, had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was
1525 all that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour and in every
1526 brighter period, as capable of attaching her; and his behaviour
1527 declared his wishes to be in that respect as earnest, as his abilities
1528 were strong.
1529
1530 Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative thought of their
1531 marriage had been raised, by his prospect of riches, was led before the
1532 end of a week to hope and expect it; and secretly to congratulate
1533 herself on having gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
1534
1535 Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had so early been
1536 discovered by his friends, now first became perceptible to Elinor, when
1537 it ceased to be noticed by them. Their attention and wit were drawn
1538 off to his more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other had
1539 incurred before any partiality arose, was removed when his feelings
1540 began really to call for the ridicule so justly annexed to sensibility.
1541 Elinor was obliged, though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments
1542 which Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction, were now
1543 actually excited by her sister; and that however a general resemblance
1544 of disposition between the parties might forward the affection of Mr.
1545 Willoughby, an equally striking opposition of character was no
1546 hindrance to the regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
1547 for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope, when opposed to a
1548 very lively one of five and twenty? and as she could not even wish him
1549 successful, she heartily wished him indifferent. She liked him--in
1550 spite of his gravity and reserve, she beheld in him an object of
1551 interest. His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
1552 appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits than of any
1553 natural gloominess of temper. Sir John had dropped hints of past
1554 injuries and disappointments, which justified her belief of his being
1555 an unfortunate man, and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
1556
1557 Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more because he was slighted by
1558 Willoughby and Marianne, who, prejudiced against him for being neither
1559 lively nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
1560
1561 "Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby one day, when they
1562 were talking of him together, "whom every body speaks well of, and
1563 nobody cares about; whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
1564 to talk to."
1565
1566 "That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
1567
1568 "Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it is injustice in
1569 both of you. He is highly esteemed by all the family at the park, and
1570 I never see him myself without taking pains to converse with him."
1571
1572 "That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby, "is certainly in
1573 his favour; but as for the esteem of the others, it is a reproach in
1574 itself. Who would submit to the indignity of being approved by such a
1575 woman as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command the
1576 indifference of any body else?"
1577
1578 "But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself and Marianne will
1579 make amends for the regard of Lady Middleton and her mother. If their
1580 praise is censure, your censure may be praise, for they are not more
1581 undiscerning, than you are prejudiced and unjust."
1582
1583 "In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
1584
1585 "My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man; and sense will always
1586 have attractions for me. Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty
1587 and forty. He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad, has
1588 read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him capable of giving me
1589 much information on various subjects; and he has always answered my
1590 inquiries with readiness of good-breeding and good nature."
1591
1592 "That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously, "he has told you, that
1593 in the East Indies the climate is hot, and the mosquitoes are
1594 troublesome."
1595
1596 "He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made any such inquiries,
1597 but they happened to be points on which I had been previously informed."
1598
1599 "Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may have extended to the
1600 existence of nabobs, gold mohrs, and palanquins."
1601
1602 "I may venture to say that HIS observations have stretched much further
1603 than your candour. But why should you dislike him?"
1604
1605 "I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary, as a very
1606 respectable man, who has every body's good word, and nobody's notice;
1607 who, has more money than he can spend, more time than he knows how to
1608 employ, and two new coats every year."
1609
1610 "Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has neither genius, taste, nor
1611 spirit. That his understanding has no brilliancy, his feelings no
1612 ardour, and his voice no expression."
1613
1614 "You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass," replied Elinor,
1615 "and so much on the strength of your own imagination, that the
1616 commendation I am able to give of him is comparatively cold and
1617 insipid. I can only pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred,
1618 well-informed, of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable
1619 heart."
1620
1621 "Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using me unkindly. You
1622 are endeavouring to disarm me by reason, and to convince me against my
1623 will. But it will not do. You shall find me as stubborn as you can be
1624 artful. I have three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel
1625 Brandon; he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine; he has
1626 found fault with the hanging of my curricle, and I cannot persuade him
1627 to buy my brown mare. If it will be any satisfaction to you, however,
1628 to be told, that I believe his character to be in other respects
1629 irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return for an
1630 acknowledgment, which must give me some pain, you cannot deny me the
1631 privilege of disliking him as much as ever."
1632
1633
1634
1635 CHAPTER 11
1636
1637
1638 Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined when they first came
1639 into Devonshire, that so many engagements would arise to occupy their
1640 time as shortly presented themselves, or that they should have such
1641 frequent invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
1642 leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case. When Marianne
1643 was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home and abroad, which Sir
1644 John had been previously forming, were put into execution. The private
1645 balls at the park then began; and parties on the water were made and
1646 accomplished as often as a showery October would allow. In every
1647 meeting of the kind Willoughby was included; and the ease and
1648 familiarity which naturally attended these parties were exactly
1649 calculated to give increasing intimacy to his acquaintance with the
1650 Dashwoods, to afford him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of
1651 Marianne, of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
1652 in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance of her
1653 affection.
1654
1655 Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment. She only wished
1656 that it were less openly shewn; and once or twice did venture to
1657 suggest the propriety of some self-command to Marianne. But Marianne
1658 abhorred all concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
1659 and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not in themselves
1660 illaudable, appeared to her not merely an unnecessary effort, but a
1661 disgraceful subjection of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
1662 Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at all times, was an
1663 illustration of their opinions.
1664
1665 When he was present she had no eyes for any one else. Every thing he
1666 did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever. If their evenings at
1667 the park were concluded with cards, he cheated himself and all the rest
1668 of the party to get her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
1669 of the night, they were partners for half the time; and when obliged to
1670 separate for a couple of dances, were careful to stand together and
1671 scarcely spoke a word to any body else. Such conduct made them of
1672 course most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame, and
1673 seemed hardly to provoke them.
1674
1675 Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with a warmth which left
1676 her no inclination for checking this excessive display of them. To her
1677 it was but the natural consequence of a strong affection in a young and
1678 ardent mind.
1679
1680 This was the season of happiness to Marianne. Her heart was devoted to
1681 Willoughby, and the fond attachment to Norland, which she brought with
1682 her from Sussex, was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
1683 possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed on her
1684 present home.
1685
1686 Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not so much at
1687 ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements so pure. They afforded
1688 her no companion that could make amends for what she had left behind,
1689 nor that could teach her to think of Norland with less regret than
1690 ever. Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply to her the
1691 conversation she missed; although the latter was an everlasting talker,
1692 and from the first had regarded her with a kindness which ensured her a
1693 large share of her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
1694 to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been equal to
1695 her means of improvement, she might have known very early in their
1696 acquaintance all the particulars of Mr. Jennings's last illness, and
1697 what he said to his wife a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton
1698 was more agreeable than her mother only in being more silent. Elinor
1699 needed little observation to perceive that her reserve was a mere
1700 calmness of manner with which sense had nothing to do. Towards her
1701 husband and mother she was the same as to them; and intimacy was
1702 therefore neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing to say
1703 one day that she had not said the day before. Her insipidity was
1704 invariable, for even her spirits were always the same; and though she
1705 did not oppose the parties arranged by her husband, provided every
1706 thing were conducted in style and her two eldest children attended her,
1707 she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them than she might
1708 have experienced in sitting at home;--and so little did her presence
1709 add to the pleasure of the others, by any share in their conversation,
1710 that they were sometimes only reminded of her being amongst them by her
1711 solicitude about her troublesome boys.
1712
1713 In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance, did Elinor find
1714 a person who could in any degree claim the respect of abilities, excite
1715 the interest of friendship, or give pleasure as a companion.
1716 Willoughby was out of the question. Her admiration and regard, even
1717 her sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover; his
1718 attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less agreeable man might
1719 have been more generally pleasing. Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for
1720 himself, had no such encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in
1721 conversing with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
1722 indifference of her sister.
1723
1724 Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason to suspect
1725 that the misery of disappointed love had already been known to him.
1726 This suspicion was given by some words which accidentally dropped from
1727 him one evening at the park, when they were sitting down together by
1728 mutual consent, while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed on
1729 Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes, he said, with a faint
1730 smile, "Your sister, I understand, does not approve of second
1731 attachments."
1732
1733 "No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
1734
1735 "Or rather, as I believe, she considers them impossible to exist."
1736
1737 "I believe she does. But how she contrives it without reflecting on
1738 the character of her own father, who had himself two wives, I know not.
1739 A few years however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis of
1740 common sense and observation; and then they may be more easy to define
1741 and to justify than they now are, by any body but herself."
1742
1743 "This will probably be the case," he replied; "and yet there is
1744 something so amiable in the prejudices of a young mind, that one is
1745 sorry to see them give way to the reception of more general opinions."
1746
1747 "I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor. "There are
1748 inconveniences attending such feelings as Marianne's, which all the
1749 charms of enthusiasm and ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her
1750 systems have all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at
1751 nought; and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look forward
1752 to as her greatest possible advantage."
1753
1754 After a short pause he resumed the conversation by saying,--
1755
1756 "Does your sister make no distinction in her objections against a
1757 second attachment? or is it equally criminal in every body? Are those
1758 who have been disappointed in their first choice, whether from the
1759 inconstancy of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances, to be
1760 equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
1761
1762 "Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae of her principles.
1763 I only know that I never yet heard her admit any instance of a second
1764 attachment's being pardonable."
1765
1766 "This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change, a total change of
1767 sentiments--No, no, do not desire it; for when the romantic refinements
1768 of a young mind are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
1769 succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too dangerous! I
1770 speak from experience. I once knew a lady who in temper and mind
1771 greatly resembled your sister, who thought and judged like her, but who
1772 from an inforced change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
1773 Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said too much,
1774 and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures, which might not
1775 otherwise have entered Elinor's head. The lady would probably have
1776 passed without suspicion, had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what
1777 concerned her ought not to escape his lips. As it was, it required but
1778 a slight effort of fancy to connect his emotion with the tender
1779 recollection of past regard. Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne,
1780 in her place, would not have done so little. The whole story would
1781 have been speedily formed under her active imagination; and every thing
1782 established in the most melancholy order of disastrous love.
1783
1784
1785
1786 CHAPTER 12
1787
1788
1789 As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the next morning the
1790 latter communicated a piece of news to her sister, which in spite of
1791 all that she knew before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
1792 surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both. Marianne told her,
1793 with the greatest delight, that Willoughby had given her a horse, one
1794 that he had bred himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
1795 exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering that it was
1796 not in her mother's plan to keep any horse, that if she were to alter
1797 her resolution in favour of this gift, she must buy another for the
1798 servant, and keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
1799 to receive them, she had accepted the present without hesitation, and
1800 told her sister of it in raptures.
1801
1802 "He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire immediately for it,"
1803 she added, "and when it arrives we will ride every day. You shall
1804 share its use with me. Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the
1805 delight of a gallop on some of these downs."
1806
1807 Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of felicity to
1808 comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended the affair; and for
1809 some time she refused to submit to them. As to an additional servant,
1810 the expense would be a trifle; Mama she was sure would never object to
1811 it; and any horse would do for HIM; he might always get one at the
1812 park; as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient. Elinor then
1813 ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving such a present from a
1814 man so little, or at least so lately known to her. This was too much.
1815
1816 "You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly, "in supposing I know very
1817 little of Willoughby. I have not known him long indeed, but I am much
1818 better acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature in the
1819 world, except yourself and mama. It is not time or opportunity that is
1820 to determine intimacy;--it is disposition alone. Seven years would be
1821 insufficient to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
1822 days are more than enough for others. I should hold myself guilty of
1823 greater impropriety in accepting a horse from my brother, than from
1824 Willoughby. Of John I know very little, though we have lived together
1825 for years; but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
1826
1827 Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more. She knew her
1828 sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a subject would only attach
1829 her the more to her own opinion. But by an appeal to her affection for
1830 her mother, by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
1831 mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be the case) she
1832 consented to this increase of establishment, Marianne was shortly
1833 subdued; and she promised not to tempt her mother to such imprudent
1834 kindness by mentioning the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw
1835 him next, that it must be declined.
1836
1837 She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby called at the
1838 cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her express her disappointment to
1839 him in a low voice, on being obliged to forego the acceptance of his
1840 present. The reasons for this alteration were at the same time
1841 related, and they were such as to make further entreaty on his side
1842 impossible. His concern however was very apparent; and after
1843 expressing it with earnestness, he added, in the same low voice,--"But,
1844 Marianne, the horse is still yours, though you cannot use it now. I
1845 shall keep it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton to
1846 form your own establishment in a more lasting home, Queen Mab shall
1847 receive you."
1848
1849 This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the whole of the
1850 sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it, and in his addressing her
1851 sister by her Christian name alone, she instantly saw an intimacy so
1852 decided, a meaning so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between
1853 them. From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged to each
1854 other; and the belief of it created no other surprise than that she, or
1855 any of their friends, should be left by tempers so frank, to discover
1856 it by accident.
1857
1858 Margaret related something to her the next day, which placed this
1859 matter in a still clearer light. Willoughby had spent the preceding
1860 evening with them, and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
1861 with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity for observations,
1862 which, with a most important face, she communicated to her eldest
1863 sister, when they were next by themselves.
1864
1865 "Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to tell you about
1866 Marianne. I am sure she will be married to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
1867
1868 "You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every day since they first
1869 met on High-church Down; and they had not known each other a week, I
1870 believe, before you were certain that Marianne wore his picture round
1871 her neck; but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great
1872 uncle."
1873
1874 "But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure they will be
1875 married very soon, for he has got a lock of her hair."
1876
1877 "Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair of some great uncle of
1878 HIS."
1879
1880 "But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost sure it is, for I
1881 saw him cut it off. Last night after tea, when you and mama went out
1882 of the room, they were whispering and talking together as fast as could
1883 be, and he seemed to be begging something of her, and presently he took
1884 up her scissors and cut off a long lock of her hair, for it was all
1885 tumbled down her back; and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of
1886 white paper; and put it into his pocket-book."
1887
1888 For such particulars, stated on such authority, Elinor could not
1889 withhold her credit; nor was she disposed to it, for the circumstance
1890 was in perfect unison with what she had heard and seen herself.
1891
1892 Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a way so satisfactory
1893 to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings attacked her one evening at the
1894 park, to give the name of the young man who was Elinor's particular
1895 favourite, which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
1896 Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying, "I must not
1897 tell, may I, Elinor?"
1898
1899 This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor tried to laugh too.
1900 But the effort was painful. She was convinced that Margaret had fixed
1901 on a person whose name she could not bear with composure to become a
1902 standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
1903
1904 Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did more harm than good
1905 to the cause, by turning very red and saying in an angry manner to
1906 Margaret,
1907
1908 "Remember that whatever your conjectures may be, you have no right to
1909 repeat them."
1910
1911 "I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret; "it was you
1912 who told me of it yourself."
1913
1914 This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret was eagerly
1915 pressed to say something more.
1916
1917 "Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it," said Mrs.
1918 Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
1919
1920 "I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is; and I know
1921 where he is too."
1922
1923 "Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house at Norland to be
1924 sure. He is the curate of the parish I dare say."
1925
1926 "No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
1927
1928 "Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth, "you know that all this is
1929 an invention of your own, and that there is no such person in
1930 existence."
1931
1932 "Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I am sure there was such
1933 a man once, and his name begins with an F."
1934
1935 Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton for observing, at this
1936 moment, "that it rained very hard," though she believed the
1937 interruption to proceed less from any attention to her, than from her
1938 ladyship's great dislike of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as
1939 delighted her husband and mother. The idea however started by her, was
1940 immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was on every occasion
1941 mindful of the feelings of others; and much was said on the subject of
1942 rain by both of them. Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked
1943 Marianne to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours of
1944 different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground. But not so
1945 easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into which it had thrown her.
1946
1947 A party was formed this evening for going on the following day to see a
1948 very fine place about twelve miles from Barton, belonging to a
1949 brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon, without whose interest it could not
1950 be seen, as the proprietor, who was then abroad, had left strict orders
1951 on that head. The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful, and
1952 Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise, might be allowed
1953 to be a tolerable judge, for he had formed parties to visit them, at
1954 least, twice every summer for the last ten years. They contained a
1955 noble piece of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of the
1956 morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken, open carriages
1957 only to be employed, and every thing conducted in the usual style of a
1958 complete party of pleasure.
1959
1960 To some few of the company it appeared rather a bold undertaking,
1961 considering the time of year, and that it had rained every day for the
1962 last fortnight;--and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was
1963 persuaded by Elinor to stay at home.
1964
1965
1966
1967 CHAPTER 13
1968
1969
1970 Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out very different from
1971 what Elinor had expected. She was prepared to be wet through,
1972 fatigued, and frightened; but the event was still more unfortunate, for
1973 they did not go at all.
1974
1975 By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at the park, where they
1976 were to breakfast. The morning was rather favourable, though it had
1977 rained all night, as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
1978 and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high spirits and
1979 good humour, eager to be happy, and determined to submit to the
1980 greatest inconveniences and hardships rather than be otherwise.
1981
1982 While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in. Among the
1983 rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he took it, looked at the
1984 direction, changed colour, and immediately left the room.
1985
1986 "What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
1987
1988 Nobody could tell.
1989
1990 "I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton. "It must be
1991 something extraordinary that could make Colonel Brandon leave my
1992 breakfast table so suddenly."
1993
1994 In about five minutes he returned.
1995
1996 "No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings, as soon as he
1997 entered the room.
1998
1999 "None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
2000
2001 "Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say that your sister is
2002 worse."
2003
2004 "No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely a letter of business."
2005
2006 "But how came the hand to discompose you so much, if it was only a
2007 letter of business? Come, come, this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear
2008 the truth of it."
2009
2010 "My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what you are saying."
2011
2012 "Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny is married?" said
2013 Mrs. Jennings, without attending to her daughter's reproof.
2014
2015 "No, indeed, it is not."
2016
2017 "Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I hope she is well."
2018
2019 "Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
2020
2021 "Oh! you know who I mean."
2022
2023 "I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he, addressing Lady Middleton,
2024 "that I should receive this letter today, for it is on business which
2025 requires my immediate attendance in town."
2026
2027 "In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you have to do in town at
2028 this time of year?"
2029
2030 "My own loss is great," he continued, "in being obliged to leave so
2031 agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned, as I fear my presence
2032 is necessary to gain your admittance at Whitwell."
2033
2034 What a blow upon them all was this!
2035
2036 "But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon," said
2037 Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
2038
2039 He shook his head.
2040
2041 "We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put off when we are so
2042 near it. You cannot go to town till tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
2043
2044 "I wish it could be so easily settled. But it is not in my power to
2045 delay my journey for one day!"
2046
2047 "If you would but let us know what your business is," said Mrs.
2048 Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put off or not."
2049
2050 "You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby, "if you were to
2051 defer your journey till our return."
2052
2053 "I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
2054
2055 Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne, "There
2056 are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure. Brandon is one of
2057 them. He was afraid of catching cold I dare say, and invented this
2058 trick for getting out of it. I would lay fifty guineas the letter was
2059 of his own writing."
2060
2061 "I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
2062
2063 "There is no persuading you to change your mind, Brandon, I know of
2064 old," said Sir John, "when once you are determined on anything. But,
2065 however, I hope you will think better of it. Consider, here are the
2066 two Miss Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods walked
2067 up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up two hours before his
2068 usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
2069
2070 Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being the cause of
2071 disappointing the party; but at the same time declared it to be
2072 unavoidable.
2073
2074 "Well, then, when will you come back again?"
2075
2076 "I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship, "as soon as
2077 you can conveniently leave town; and we must put off the party to
2078 Whitwell till you return."
2079
2080 "You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain, when I may have it in
2081 my power to return, that I dare not engage for it at all."
2082
2083 "Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John. "If he is not here
2084 by the end of the week, I shall go after him."
2085
2086 "Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then perhaps you may
2087 find out what his business is."
2088
2089 "I do not want to pry into other men's concerns. I suppose it is
2090 something he is ashamed of."
2091
2092 Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
2093
2094 "You do not go to town on horseback, do you?" added Sir John.
2095
2096 "No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
2097
2098 "Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you a good journey. But you
2099 had better change your mind."
2100
2101 "I assure you it is not in my power."
2102
2103 He then took leave of the whole party.
2104
2105 "Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters in town this
2106 winter, Miss Dashwood?"
2107
2108 "I am afraid, none at all."
2109
2110 "Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time than I should wish to
2111 do."
2112
2113 To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
2114
2115 "Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go, do let us know what
2116 you are going about."
2117
2118 He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John, left the room.
2119
2120 The complaints and lamentations which politeness had hitherto
2121 restrained, now burst forth universally; and they all agreed again and
2122 again how provoking it was to be so disappointed.
2123
2124 "I can guess what his business is, however," said Mrs. Jennings
2125 exultingly.
2126
2127 "Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
2128
2129 "Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
2130
2131 "And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
2132
2133 "What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am sure you must have
2134 heard of her before. She is a relation of the Colonel's, my dear; a
2135 very near relation. We will not say how near, for fear of shocking the
2136 young ladies." Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
2137 "She is his natural daughter."
2138
2139 "Indeed!"
2140
2141 "Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare. I dare say the Colonel
2142 will leave her all his fortune."
2143
2144 When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily in the general regret
2145 on so unfortunate an event; concluding however by observing, that as
2146 they were all got together, they must do something by way of being
2147 happy; and after some consultation it was agreed, that although
2148 happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell, they might procure a
2149 tolerable composure of mind by driving about the country. The
2150 carriages were then ordered; Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never
2151 looked happier than when she got into it. He drove through the park
2152 very fast, and they were soon out of sight; and nothing more of them
2153 was seen till their return, which did not happen till after the return
2154 of all the rest. They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
2155 only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes, while the others
2156 went on the downs.
2157
2158 It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening, and that
2159 every body should be extremely merry all day long. Some more of the
2160 Careys came to dinner, and they had the pleasure of sitting down nearly
2161 twenty to table, which Sir John observed with great contentment.
2162 Willoughby took his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
2163 Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not been long
2164 seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby, and said to
2165 Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear, "I have found you out in
2166 spite of all your tricks. I know where you spent the morning."
2167
2168 Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily, "Where, pray?"--
2169
2170 "Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had been out in my
2171 curricle?"
2172
2173 "Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well, and I was determined
2174 to find out WHERE you had been to.-- I hope you like your house, Miss
2175 Marianne. It is a very large one, I know; and when I come to see you,
2176 I hope you will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much when
2177 I was there six years ago."
2178
2179 Marianne turned away in great confusion. Mrs. Jennings laughed
2180 heartily; and Elinor found that in her resolution to know where they
2181 had been, she had actually made her own woman enquire of Mr.
2182 Willoughby's groom; and that she had by that method been informed that
2183 they had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there in
2184 walking about the garden and going all over the house.
2185
2186 Elinor could hardly believe this to be true, as it seemed very unlikely
2187 that Willoughby should propose, or Marianne consent, to enter the house
2188 while Mrs. Smith was in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest
2189 acquaintance.
2190
2191 As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired of her about it;
2192 and great was her surprise when she found that every circumstance
2193 related by Mrs. Jennings was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry
2194 with her for doubting it.
2195
2196 "Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not go there, or that we
2197 did not see the house? Is not it what you have often wished to do
2198 yourself?"
2199
2200 "Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith was there, and with
2201 no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
2202
2203 "Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can have a right to shew
2204 that house; and as he went in an open carriage, it was impossible to
2205 have any other companion. I never spent a pleasanter morning in my
2206 life."
2207
2208 "I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness of an employment
2209 does not always evince its propriety."
2210
2211 "On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof of it, Elinor; for if
2212 there had been any real impropriety in what I did, I should have been
2213 sensible of it at the time, for we always know when we are acting
2214 wrong, and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
2215
2216 "But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you to some very
2217 impertinent remarks, do you not now begin to doubt the discretion of
2218 your own conduct?"
2219
2220 "If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are to be the proof of
2221 impropriety in conduct, we are all offending every moment of our lives.
2222 I value not her censure any more than I should do her commendation. I
2223 am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking over Mrs.
2224 Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house. They will one day be Mr.
2225 Willoughby's, and--"
2226
2227 "If they were one day to be your own, Marianne, you would not be
2228 justified in what you have done."
2229
2230 She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly gratifying to her;
2231 and after a ten minutes' interval of earnest thought, she came to her
2232 sister again, and said with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS
2233 rather ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
2234 particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house, I assure
2235 you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room up stairs; of a nice
2236 comfortable size for constant use, and with modern furniture it would
2237 be delightful. It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides. On
2238 one side you look across the bowling-green, behind the house, to a
2239 beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you have a view of the church
2240 and village, and, beyond them, of those fine bold hills that we have so
2241 often admired. I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
2242 more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly fitted up--a
2243 couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says, would make it one of the
2244 pleasantest summer-rooms in England."
2245
2246 Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption from the others,
2247 she would have described every room in the house with equal delight.
2248
2249
2250
2251 CHAPTER 14
2252
2253
2254 The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit at the park, with his
2255 steadiness in concealing its cause, filled the mind, and raised the
2256 wonder of Mrs. Jennings for two or three days; she was a great
2257 wonderer, as every one must be who takes a very lively interest in all
2258 the comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered, with
2259 little intermission what could be the reason of it; was sure there must
2260 be some bad news, and thought over every kind of distress that could
2261 have befallen him, with a fixed determination that he should not escape
2262 them all.
2263
2264 "Something very melancholy must be the matter, I am sure," said she.
2265 "I could see it in his face. Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances
2266 may be bad. The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two
2267 thousand a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved. I do
2268 think he must have been sent for about money matters, for what else can
2269 it be? I wonder whether it is so. I would give anything to know the
2270 truth of it. Perhaps it is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare
2271 say it is, because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her. May be
2272 she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely, for I have a
2273 notion she is always rather sickly. I would lay any wager it is about
2274 Miss Williams. It is not so very likely he should be distressed in his
2275 circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man, and to be sure must
2276 have cleared the estate by this time. I wonder what it can be! May be
2277 his sister is worse at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting
2278 off in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out of all
2279 his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into the bargain."
2280
2281 So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion varying with every
2282 fresh conjecture, and all seeming equally probable as they arose.
2283 Elinor, though she felt really interested in the welfare of Colonel
2284 Brandon, could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly away,
2285 which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling; for besides that the
2286 circumstance did not in her opinion justify such lasting amazement or
2287 variety of speculation, her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was
2288 engrossed by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby on
2289 the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly interesting to them
2290 all. As this silence continued, every day made it appear more strange
2291 and more incompatible with the disposition of both. Why they should
2292 not openly acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
2293 behaviour to each other declared to have taken place, Elinor could not
2294 imagine.
2295
2296 She could easily conceive that marriage might not be immediately in
2297 their power; for though Willoughby was independent, there was no reason
2298 to believe him rich. His estate had been rated by Sir John at about
2299 six or seven hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that
2300 income could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained of
2301 his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy maintained by them
2302 relative to their engagement, which in fact concealed nothing at all,
2303 she could not account; and it was so wholly contradictory to their
2304 general opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered her mind
2305 of their being really engaged, and this doubt was enough to prevent her
2306 making any inquiry of Marianne.
2307
2308 Nothing could be more expressive of attachment to them all, than
2309 Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne it had all the distinguishing
2310 tenderness which a lover's heart could give, and to the rest of the
2311 family it was the affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The
2312 cottage seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home; many more
2313 of his hours were spent there than at Allenham; and if no general
2314 engagement collected them at the park, the exercise which called him
2315 out in the morning was almost certain of ending there, where the rest
2316 of the day was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
2317 favourite pointer at her feet.
2318
2319 One evening in particular, about a week after Colonel Brandon left the
2320 country, his heart seemed more than usually open to every feeling of
2321 attachment to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's happening
2322 to mention her design of improving the cottage in the spring, he warmly
2323 opposed every alteration of a place which affection had established as
2324 perfect with him.
2325
2326 "What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage! No. THAT I will
2327 never consent to. Not a stone must be added to its walls, not an inch
2328 to its size, if my feelings are regarded."
2329
2330 "Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood, "nothing of the kind will be
2331 done; for my mother will never have money enough to attempt it."
2332
2333 "I am heartily glad of it," he cried. "May she always be poor, if she
2334 can employ her riches no better."
2335
2336 "Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I would not
2337 sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment of yours, or of any one
2338 whom I loved, for all the improvements in the world. Depend upon it
2339 that whatever unemployed sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in
2340 the spring, I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose of it
2341 in a manner so painful to you. But are you really so attached to this
2342 place as to see no defect in it?"
2343
2344 "I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more, I consider it as
2345 the only form of building in which happiness is attainable, and were I
2346 rich enough I would instantly pull Combe down, and build it up again in
2347 the exact plan of this cottage."
2348
2349 "With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes, I suppose," said
2350 Elinor.
2351
2352 "Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all and every thing
2353 belonging to it;--in no one convenience or INconvenience about it,
2354 should the least variation be perceptible. Then, and then only, under
2355 such a roof, I might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at
2356 Barton."
2357
2358 "I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under the disadvantage
2359 of better rooms and a broader staircase, you will hereafter find your
2360 own house as faultless as you now do this."
2361
2362 "There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby, "which might
2363 greatly endear it to me; but this place will always have one claim of
2364 my affection, which no other can possibly share."
2365
2366 Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne, whose fine eyes were
2367 fixed so expressively on Willoughby, as plainly denoted how well she
2368 understood him.
2369
2370 "How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at Allenham this time
2371 twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were inhabited! I never passed within
2372 view of it without admiring its situation, and grieving that no one
2373 should live in it. How little did I then think that the very first
2374 news I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into the country,
2375 would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I felt an immediate
2376 satisfaction and interest in the event, which nothing but a kind of
2377 prescience of what happiness I should experience from it, can account
2378 for. Must it not have been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered
2379 voice. Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this house
2380 you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it of its simplicity by
2381 imaginary improvement! and this dear parlour in which our acquaintance
2382 first began, and in which so many happy hours have been since spent by
2383 us together, you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
2384 and every body would be eager to pass through the room which has
2385 hitherto contained within itself more real accommodation and comfort
2386 than any other apartment of the handsomest dimensions in the world
2387 could possibly afford."
2388
2389 Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration of the kind should
2390 be attempted.
2391
2392 "You are a good woman," he warmly replied. "Your promise makes me
2393 easy. Extend it a little farther, and it will make me happy. Tell me
2394 that not only your house will remain the same, but that I shall ever
2395 find you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you will
2396 always consider me with the kindness which has made everything
2397 belonging to you so dear to me."
2398
2399 The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's behaviour during the
2400 whole of the evening declared at once his affection and happiness.
2401
2402 "Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood, when he was
2403 leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in the morning, for we must
2404 walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
2405
2406 He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
2407
2408
2409
2410 CHAPTER 15
2411
2412
2413 Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place the next day, and
2414 two of her daughters went with her; but Marianne excused herself from
2415 being of the party, under some trifling pretext of employment; and her
2416 mother, who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby the
2417 night before of calling on her while they were absent, was perfectly
2418 satisfied with her remaining at home.
2419
2420 On their return from the park they found Willoughby's curricle and
2421 servant in waiting at the cottage, and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that
2422 her conjecture had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
2423 but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight had taught her
2424 to expect. They were no sooner in the passage than Marianne came
2425 hastily out of the parlour apparently in violent affliction, with her
2426 handkerchief at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
2427 Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room she had
2428 just quitted, where they found only Willoughby, who was leaning against
2429 the mantel-piece with his back towards them. He turned round on their
2430 coming in, and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook of the
2431 emotion which over-powered Marianne.
2432
2433 "Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood as she
2434 entered--"is she ill?"
2435
2436 "I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful; and with a forced
2437 smile presently added, "It is I who may rather expect to be ill--for I
2438 am now suffering under a very heavy disappointment!"
2439
2440 "Disappointment?"
2441
2442 "Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you. Mrs. Smith has
2443 this morning exercised the privilege of riches upon a poor dependent
2444 cousin, by sending me on business to London. I have just received my
2445 dispatches, and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of
2446 exhilaration I am now come to take my farewell of you."
2447
2448 "To London!--and are you going this morning?"
2449
2450 "Almost this moment."
2451
2452 "This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must be obliged;--and her
2453 business will not detain you from us long I hope."
2454
2455 He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I have no idea of
2456 returning into Devonshire immediately. My visits to Mrs. Smith are
2457 never repeated within the twelvemonth."
2458
2459 "And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only house in the
2460 neighbourhood to which you will be welcome? For shame, Willoughby, can
2461 you wait for an invitation here?"
2462
2463 His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed on the ground he only
2464 replied, "You are too good."
2465
2466 Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise. Elinor felt equal
2467 amazement. For a few moments every one was silent. Mrs. Dashwood
2468 first spoke.
2469
2470 "I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at Barton cottage you
2471 will always be welcome; for I will not press you to return here
2472 immediately, because you only can judge how far THAT might be pleasing
2473 to Mrs. Smith; and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
2474 your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
2475
2476 "My engagements at present," replied Willoughby, confusedly, "are of
2477 such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
2478
2479 He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished to speak, and another
2480 pause succeeded. This was broken by Willoughby, who said with a faint
2481 smile, "It is folly to linger in this manner. I will not torment
2482 myself any longer by remaining among friends whose society it is
2483 impossible for me now to enjoy."
2484
2485 He then hastily took leave of them all and left the room. They saw him
2486 step into his carriage, and in a minute it was out of sight.
2487
2488 Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly quitted the
2489 parlour to give way in solitude to the concern and alarm which this
2490 sudden departure occasioned.
2491
2492 Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's. She thought of
2493 what had just passed with anxiety and distrust. Willoughby's behaviour
2494 in taking leave of them, his embarrassment, and affectation of
2495 cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness to accept her mother's
2496 invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover, so unlike himself,
2497 greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared that no serious design
2498 had ever been formed on his side; and the next that some unfortunate
2499 quarrel had taken place between him and her sister;--the distress in
2500 which Marianne had quitted the room was such as a serious quarrel could
2501 most reasonably account for, though when she considered what Marianne's
2502 love for him was, a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
2503
2504 But whatever might be the particulars of their separation, her sister's
2505 affliction was indubitable; and she thought with the tenderest
2506 compassion of that violent sorrow which Marianne was in all probability
2507 not merely giving way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a
2508 duty.
2509
2510 In about half an hour her mother returned, and though her eyes were
2511 red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
2512
2513 "Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor," said she,
2514 as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart does he travel?"
2515
2516 "It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It seems but the work
2517 of a moment. And last night he was with us so happy, so cheerful, so
2518 affectionate? And now, after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without
2519 intending to return!--Something more than what he owned to us must have
2520 happened. He did not speak, he did not behave like himself. YOU must
2521 have seen the difference as well as I. What can it be? Can they have
2522 quarrelled? Why else should he have shewn such unwillingness to accept
2523 your invitation here?"--
2524
2525 "It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could plainly see
2526 THAT. He had not the power of accepting it. I have thought it all
2527 over I assure you, and I can perfectly account for every thing that at
2528 first seemed strange to me as well as to you."
2529
2530 "Can you, indeed!"
2531
2532 "Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most satisfactory way;--but
2533 you, Elinor, who love to doubt where you can--it will not satisfy YOU,
2534 I know; but you shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am
2535 persuaded that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne, disapproves
2536 of it, (perhaps because she has other views for him,) and on that
2537 account is eager to get him away;--and that the business which she
2538 sends him off to transact is invented as an excuse to dismiss him.
2539 This is what I believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that
2540 she DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore at present
2541 confess to her his engagement with Marianne, and he feels himself
2542 obliged, from his dependent situation, to give into her schemes, and
2543 absent himself from Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
2544 that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen to no cavil,
2545 unless you can point out any other method of understanding the affair
2546 as satisfactory at this. And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
2547
2548 "Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
2549
2550 "Then you would have told me, that it might or might not have happened.
2551 Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your feelings! You had rather
2552 take evil upon credit than good. You had rather look out for misery
2553 for Marianne, and guilt for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the
2554 latter. You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took leave
2555 of us with less affection than his usual behaviour has shewn. And is
2556 no allowance to be made for inadvertence, or for spirits depressed by
2557 recent disappointment? Are no probabilities to be accepted, merely
2558 because they are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
2559 have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world to think ill
2560 of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable in themselves, though
2561 unavoidably secret for a while? And, after all, what is it you suspect
2562 him of?"
2563
2564 "I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of something unpleasant is
2565 the inevitable consequence of such an alteration as we just witnessed
2566 in him. There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged of
2567 the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it is my wish to be
2568 candid in my judgment of every body. Willoughby may undoubtedly have
2569 very sufficient reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
2570 But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge them at
2571 once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I cannot help wondering at
2572 its being practiced by him."
2573
2574 "Do not blame him, however, for departing from his character, where the
2575 deviation is necessary. But you really do admit the justice of what I
2576 have said in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
2577
2578 "Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their engagement (if they
2579 ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--and if that is the case, it must be
2580 highly expedient for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at
2581 present. But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
2582
2583 "Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse Willoughby and
2584 Marianne of concealment? This is strange indeed, when your eyes have
2585 been reproaching them every day for incautiousness."
2586
2587 "I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor; "but of their
2588 engagement I do."
2589
2590 "I am perfectly satisfied of both."
2591
2592 "Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the subject, by either of
2593 them."
2594
2595 "I have not wanted syllables where actions have spoken so plainly. Has
2596 not his behaviour to Marianne and to all of us, for at least the last
2597 fortnight, declared that he loved and considered her as his future
2598 wife, and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest relation?
2599 Have we not perfectly understood each other? Has not my consent been
2600 daily asked by his looks, his manner, his attentive and affectionate
2601 respect? My Elinor, is it possible to doubt their engagement? How
2602 could such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed that
2603 Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your sister's love, should leave
2604 her, and leave her perhaps for months, without telling her of his
2605 affection;--that they should part without a mutual exchange of
2606 confidence?"
2607
2608 "I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance except ONE is in
2609 favour of their engagement; but that ONE is the total silence of both
2610 on the subject, and with me it almost outweighs every other."
2611
2612 "How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed of Willoughby,
2613 if, after all that has openly passed between them, you can doubt the
2614 nature of the terms on which they are together. Has he been acting a
2615 part in his behaviour to your sister all this time? Do you suppose him
2616 really indifferent to her?"
2617
2618 "No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her I am sure."
2619
2620 "But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can leave her with such
2621 indifference, such carelessness of the future, as you attribute to him."
2622
2623 "You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never considered this
2624 matter as certain. I have had my doubts, I confess; but they are
2625 fainter than they were, and they may soon be entirely done away. If we
2626 find they correspond, every fear of mine will be removed."
2627
2628 "A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see them at the altar, you
2629 would suppose they were going to be married. Ungracious girl! But I
2630 require no such proof. Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to
2631 justify doubt; no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly
2632 open and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes. It must
2633 be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why? Is he not a man of
2634 honour and feeling? Has there been any inconsistency on his side to
2635 create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
2636
2637 "I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor. "I love Willoughby,
2638 sincerely love him; and suspicion of his integrity cannot be more
2639 painful to yourself than to me. It has been involuntary, and I will
2640 not encourage it. I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
2641 manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself, and did not
2642 return your kindness with any cordiality. But all this may be
2643 explained by such a situation of his affairs as you have supposed. He
2644 had just parted from my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest
2645 affliction; and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs.
2646 Smith, to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet aware
2647 that by declining your invitation, by saying that he was going away for
2648 some time, he should seem to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by
2649 our family, he might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a
2650 case, a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been more
2651 to his honour I think, as well as more consistent with his general
2652 character;--but I will not raise objections against any one's conduct
2653 on so illiberal a foundation, as a difference in judgment from myself,
2654 or a deviation from what I may think right and consistent."
2655
2656 "You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does not deserve to be
2657 suspected. Though WE have not known him long, he is no stranger in
2658 this part of the world; and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage?
2659 Had he been in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
2660 it might have been odd that he should leave us without acknowledging
2661 everything to me at once: but this is not the case. It is an
2662 engagement in some respects not prosperously begun, for their marriage
2663 must be at a very uncertain distance; and even secrecy, as far as it
2664 can be observed, may now be very advisable."
2665
2666 They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret; and Elinor was then
2667 at liberty to think over the representations of her mother, to
2668 acknowledge the probability of many, and hope for the justice of all.
2669
2670 They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time, when she entered the
2671 room and took her place at the table without saying a word. Her eyes
2672 were red and swollen; and it seemed as if her tears were even then
2673 restrained with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all, could
2674 neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her mother's silently
2675 pressing her hand with tender compassion, her small degree of fortitude
2676 was quite overcome, she burst into tears and left the room.
2677
2678 This violent oppression of spirits continued the whole evening. She
2679 was without any power, because she was without any desire of command
2680 over herself. The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
2681 overpowered her in an instant; and though her family were most
2682 anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was impossible for them, if they
2683 spoke at all, to keep clear of every subject which her feelings
2684 connected with him.
2685
2686
2687
2688 CHAPTER 16
2689
2690
2691 Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable had she been able
2692 to sleep at all the first night after parting from Willoughby. She
2693 would have been ashamed to look her family in the face the next
2694 morning, had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose than
2695 when she lay down in it. But the feelings which made such composure a
2696 disgrace, left her in no danger of incurring it. She was awake the
2697 whole night, and she wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a
2698 headache, was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
2699 giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters, and forbidding all
2700 attempt at consolation from either. Her sensibility was potent enough!
2701
2702 When breakfast was over she walked out by herself, and wandered about
2703 the village of Allenham, indulging the recollection of past enjoyment
2704 and crying over the present reverse for the chief of the morning.
2705
2706 The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling. She played
2707 over every favourite song that she had been used to play to Willoughby,
2708 every air in which their voices had been oftenest joined, and sat at
2709 the instrument gazing on every line of music that he had written out
2710 for her, till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness could be
2711 gained; and this nourishment of grief was every day applied. She spent
2712 whole hours at the pianoforte alternately singing and crying; her voice
2713 often totally suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in
2714 music, she courted the misery which a contrast between the past and
2715 present was certain of giving. She read nothing but what they had been
2716 used to read together.
2717
2718 Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported for ever; it
2719 sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy; but these employments,
2720 to which she daily recurred, her solitary walks and silent meditations,
2721 still produced occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
2722
2723 No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected by Marianne.
2724 Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again became uneasy. But Mrs.
2725 Dashwood could find explanations whenever she wanted them, which at
2726 least satisfied herself.
2727
2728 "Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John fetches our
2729 letters himself from the post, and carries them to it. We have already
2730 agreed that secrecy may be necessary, and we must acknowledge that it
2731 could not be maintained if their correspondence were to pass through
2732 Sir John's hands."
2733
2734 Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried to find in it a
2735 motive sufficient for their silence. But there was one method so
2736 direct, so simple, and in her opinion so eligible of knowing the real
2737 state of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery, that she
2738 could not help suggesting it to her mother.
2739
2740 "Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she, "whether she is or she
2741 is not engaged to Willoughby? From you, her mother, and so kind, so
2742 indulgent a mother, the question could not give offence. It would be
2743 the natural result of your affection for her. She used to be all
2744 unreserve, and to you more especially."
2745
2746 "I would not ask such a question for the world. Supposing it possible
2747 that they are not engaged, what distress would not such an enquiry
2748 inflict! At any rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never
2749 deserve her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession of
2750 what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one. I know
2751 Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me, and that I shall not
2752 be the last to whom the affair is made known, when circumstances make
2753 the revealment of it eligible. I would not attempt to force the
2754 confidence of any one; of a child much less; because a sense of duty
2755 would prevent the denial which her wishes might direct."
2756
2757 Elinor thought this generosity overstrained, considering her sister's
2758 youth, and urged the matter farther, but in vain; common sense, common
2759 care, common prudence, were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic
2760 delicacy.
2761
2762 It was several days before Willoughby's name was mentioned before
2763 Marianne by any of her family; Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were
2764 not so nice; their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--but
2765 one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a volume of
2766 Shakespeare, exclaimed,
2767
2768 "We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear Willoughby went away
2769 before we could get through it. We will put it by, that when he comes
2770 again...But it may be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
2771
2772 "Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise. "No--nor many weeks."
2773
2774 Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said; but it gave Elinor
2775 pleasure, as it produced a reply from Marianne so expressive of
2776 confidence in Willoughby and knowledge of his intentions.
2777
2778 One morning, about a week after his leaving the country, Marianne was
2779 prevailed on to join her sisters in their usual walk, instead of
2780 wandering away by herself. Hitherto she had carefully avoided every
2781 companion in her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the
2782 downs, she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked of the
2783 valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills, and could never be
2784 found when the others set off. But at length she was secured by the
2785 exertions of Elinor, who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion.
2786 They walked along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
2787 for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor, satisfied with
2788 gaining one point, would not then attempt more. Beyond the entrance of
2789 the valley, where the country, though still rich, was less wild and
2790 more open, a long stretch of the road which they had travelled on first
2791 coming to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point, they
2792 stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect which formed the
2793 distance of their view from the cottage, from a spot which they had
2794 never happened to reach in any of their walks before.
2795
2796 Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered an animated one;
2797 it was a man on horseback riding towards them. In a few minutes they
2798 could distinguish him to be a gentleman; and in a moment afterwards
2799 Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
2800
2801 "It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was hastening to meet
2802 him, when Elinor cried out,
2803
2804 "Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is not Willoughby.
2805 The person is not tall enough for him, and has not his air."
2806
2807 "He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has. His air, his
2808 coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
2809
2810 She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor, to screen Marianne from
2811 particularity, as she felt almost certain of its not being Willoughby,
2812 quickened her pace and kept up with her. They were soon within thirty
2813 yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again; her heart sunk within
2814 her; and abruptly turning round, she was hurrying back, when the voices
2815 of both her sisters were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well
2816 known as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop, and she
2817 turned round with surprise to see and welcome Edward Ferrars.
2818
2819 He was the only person in the world who could at that moment be
2820 forgiven for not being Willoughby; the only one who could have gained a
2821 smile from her; but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
2822 sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
2823
2824 He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant, walked back with
2825 them to Barton, whither he was purposely coming to visit them.
2826
2827 He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality, but especially by
2828 Marianne, who showed more warmth of regard in her reception of him than
2829 even Elinor herself. To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward
2830 and her sister was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness
2831 which she had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour. On
2832 Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency of all that a
2833 lover ought to look and say on such an occasion. He was confused,
2834 seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure in seeing them, looked neither
2835 rapturous nor gay, said little but what was forced from him by
2836 questions, and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection. Marianne
2837 saw and listened with increasing surprise. She began almost to feel a
2838 dislike of Edward; and it ended, as every feeling must end with her, by
2839 carrying back her thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a
2840 contrast sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
2841
2842 After a short silence which succeeded the first surprise and enquiries
2843 of meeting, Marianne asked Edward if he came directly from London. No,
2844 he had been in Devonshire a fortnight.
2845
2846 "A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being so long in the same
2847 county with Elinor without seeing her before.
2848
2849 He looked rather distressed as he added, that he had been staying with
2850 some friends near Plymouth.
2851
2852 "Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
2853
2854 "I was at Norland about a month ago."
2855
2856 "And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
2857
2858 "Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks much as it always
2859 does at this time of the year. The woods and walks thickly covered
2860 with dead leaves."
2861
2862 "Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation have I formerly
2863 seen them fall! How have I delighted, as I walked, to see them driven
2864 in showers about me by the wind! What feelings have they, the season,
2865 the air altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them. They
2866 are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off, and driven as much as
2867 possible from the sight."
2868
2869 "It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your passion for dead
2870 leaves."
2871
2872 "No; my feelings are not often shared, not often understood. But
2873 SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this, she sunk into a reverie for a
2874 few moments;--but rousing herself again, "Now, Edward," said she,
2875 calling his attention to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up
2876 to it, and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills! Did you ever
2877 see their equals? To the left is Barton park, amongst those woods and
2878 plantations. You may see the end of the house. And there, beneath
2879 that farthest hill, which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
2880
2881 "It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these bottoms must be
2882 dirty in winter."
2883
2884 "How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
2885
2886 "Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the objects before
2887 me, I see a very dirty lane."
2888
2889 "How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
2890
2891 "Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the Middletons pleasant
2892 people?"
2893
2894 "No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not be more unfortunately
2895 situated."
2896
2897 "Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can you be so
2898 unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars; and towards
2899 us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you forgot, Marianne,
2900 how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
2901
2902 "No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many painful moments."
2903
2904 Elinor took no notice of this; and directing her attention to their
2905 visitor, endeavoured to support something like discourse with him, by
2906 talking of their present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting
2907 from him occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
2908 mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry; but resolving to
2909 regulate her behaviour to him by the past rather than the present, she
2910 avoided every appearance of resentment or displeasure, and treated him
2911 as she thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
2912
2913
2914
2915 CHAPTER 17
2916
2917
2918 Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at seeing him; for his
2919 coming to Barton was, in her opinion, of all things the most natural.
2920 Her joy and expression of regard long outlived her wonder. He received
2921 the kindest welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
2922 stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him before he
2923 entered the house, and they were quite overcome by the captivating
2924 manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man could not very well be in love
2925 with either of her daughters, without extending the passion to her; and
2926 Elinor had the satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like
2927 himself. His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all, and his
2928 interest in their welfare again became perceptible. He was not in
2929 spirits, however; he praised their house, admired its prospect, was
2930 attentive, and kind; but still he was not in spirits. The whole family
2931 perceived it, and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of
2932 liberality in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
2933 selfish parents.
2934
2935 "What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?" said she,
2936 when dinner was over and they had drawn round the fire; "are you still
2937 to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
2938
2939 "No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have no more talents than
2940 inclination for a public life!"
2941
2942 "But how is your fame to be established? for famous you must be to
2943 satisfy all your family; and with no inclination for expense, no
2944 affection for strangers, no profession, and no assurance, you may find
2945 it a difficult matter."
2946
2947 "I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be distinguished; and have
2948 every reason to hope I never shall. Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced
2949 into genius and eloquence."
2950
2951 "You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes are all moderate."
2952
2953 "As moderate as those of the rest of the world, I believe. I wish as
2954 well as every body else to be perfectly happy; but, like every body
2955 else it must be in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
2956
2957 "Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have wealth or grandeur
2958 to do with happiness?"
2959
2960 "Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth has much to do with
2961 it."
2962
2963 "Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only give happiness
2964 where there is nothing else to give it. Beyond a competence, it can
2965 afford no real satisfaction, as far as mere self is concerned."
2966
2967 "Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come to the same point. YOUR
2968 competence and MY wealth are very much alike, I dare say; and without
2969 them, as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every kind of
2970 external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas are only more noble than
2971 mine. Come, what is your competence?"
2972
2973 "About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year; not more than THAT."
2974
2975 Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my wealth! I guessed how
2976 it would end."
2977
2978 "And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income," said Marianne.
2979 "A family cannot well be maintained on a smaller. I am sure I am not
2980 extravagant in my demands. A proper establishment of servants, a
2981 carriage, perhaps two, and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
2982
2983 Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing so accurately their
2984 future expenses at Combe Magna.
2985
2986 "Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have hunters? Every body
2987 does not hunt."
2988
2989 Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
2990
2991 "I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought, "that somebody
2992 would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
2993
2994 "Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes sparkling with
2995 animation, and her cheeks glowing with the delight of such imaginary
2996 happiness.
2997
2998 "We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose," said Elinor, "in spite
2999 of the insufficiency of wealth."
3000
3001 "Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be! I wonder what I
3002 should do with it!"
3003
3004 Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
3005
3006 "I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself," said Mrs.
3007 Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich without my help."
3008
3009 "You must begin your improvements on this house," observed Elinor, "and
3010 your difficulties will soon vanish."
3011
3012 "What magnificent orders would travel from this family to London," said
3013 Edward, "in such an event! What a happy day for booksellers,
3014 music-sellers, and print-shops! You, Miss Dashwood, would give a
3015 general commission for every new print of merit to be sent you--and as
3016 for Marianne, I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music
3017 enough in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
3018 Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she would buy up
3019 every copy, I believe, to prevent their falling into unworthy hands;
3020 and she would have every book that tells her how to admire an old
3021 twisted tree. Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very
3022 saucy. But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our old
3023 disputes."
3024
3025 "I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it be melancholy or
3026 gay, I love to recall it--and you will never offend me by talking of
3027 former times. You are very right in supposing how my money would be
3028 spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly be employed
3029 in improving my collection of music and books."
3030
3031 "And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out in annuities on the
3032 authors or their heirs."
3033
3034 "No, Edward, I should have something else to do with it."
3035
3036 "Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that person who
3037 wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim, that no one can ever
3038 be in love more than once in their life--your opinion on that point is
3039 unchanged, I presume?"
3040
3041 "Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed. It is
3042 not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
3043
3044 "Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor, "she is not
3045 at all altered."
3046
3047 "She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
3048
3049 "Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me. You are not
3050 very gay yourself."
3051
3052 "Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh. "But gaiety never
3053 was a part of MY character."
3054
3055 "Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor; "I should hardly
3056 call her a lively girl--she is very earnest, very eager in all she
3057 does--sometimes talks a great deal and always with animation--but she
3058 is not often really merry."
3059
3060 "I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I have always set her
3061 down as a lively girl."
3062
3063 "I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes," said
3064 Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some point or
3065 other: fancying people so much more gay or grave, or ingenious or
3066 stupid than they really are, and I can hardly tell why or in what the
3067 deception originated. Sometimes one is guided by what they say of
3068 themselves, and very frequently by what other people say of them,
3069 without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
3070
3071 "But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne, "to be guided
3072 wholly by the opinion of other people. I thought our judgments were
3073 given us merely to be subservient to those of neighbours. This has
3074 always been your doctrine, I am sure."
3075
3076 "No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed at the subjection of
3077 the understanding. All I have ever attempted to influence has been the
3078 behaviour. You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
3079 of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance in general with
3080 greater attention; but when have I advised you to adopt their
3081 sentiments or to conform to their judgment in serious matters?"
3082
3083 "You have not been able to bring your sister over to your plan of
3084 general civility," said Edward to Elinor. "Do you gain no ground?"
3085
3086 "Quite the contrary," replied Elinor, looking expressively at Marianne.
3087
3088 "My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side of the question; but I
3089 am afraid my practice is much more on your sister's. I never wish to
3090 offend, but I am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent, when I
3091 am only kept back by my natural awkwardness. I have frequently thought
3092 that I must have been intended by nature to be fond of low company, I
3093 am so little at my ease among strangers of gentility!"
3094
3095 "Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention of hers," said
3096 Elinor.
3097
3098 "She knows her own worth too well for false shame," replied Edward.
3099 "Shyness is only the effect of a sense of inferiority in some way or
3100 other. If I could persuade myself that my manners were perfectly easy
3101 and graceful, I should not be shy."
3102
3103 "But you would still be reserved," said Marianne, "and that is worse."
3104
3105 Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
3106
3107 "Yes, very."
3108
3109 "I do not understand you," replied he, colouring. "Reserved!--how, in
3110 what manner? What am I to tell you? What can you suppose?"
3111
3112 Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying to laugh off the
3113 subject, she said to him, "Do not you know my sister well enough to
3114 understand what she means? Do not you know she calls every one
3115 reserved who does not talk as fast, and admire what she admires as
3116 rapturously as herself?"
3117
3118 Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness returned on him
3119 in their fullest extent--and he sat for some time silent and dull.
3120
3121
3122
3123 CHAPTER 18
3124
3125
3126 Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits of her friend. His
3127 visit afforded her but a very partial satisfaction, while his own
3128 enjoyment in it appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was
3129 unhappy; she wished it were equally evident that he still distinguished
3130 her by the same affection which once she had felt no doubt of
3131 inspiring; but hitherto the continuance of his preference seemed very
3132 uncertain; and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
3133 one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
3134
3135 He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room the next morning
3136 before the others were down; and Marianne, who was always eager to
3137 promote their happiness as far as she could, soon left them to
3138 themselves. But before she was half way upstairs she heard the parlour
3139 door open, and, turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself
3140 come out.
3141
3142 "I am going into the village to see my horses," said he, "as you are
3143 not yet ready for breakfast; I shall be back again presently."
3144
3145 ***
3146
3147 Edward returned to them with fresh admiration of the surrounding
3148 country; in his walk to the village, he had seen many parts of the
3149 valley to advantage; and the village itself, in a much higher situation
3150 than the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
3151 exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured Marianne's
3152 attention, and she was beginning to describe her own admiration of
3153 these scenes, and to question him more minutely on the objects that had
3154 particularly struck him, when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You
3155 must not enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge in the
3156 picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance and want of taste
3157 if we come to particulars. I shall call hills steep, which ought to be
3158 bold; surfaces strange and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and
3159 rugged; and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
3160 indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere. You must be
3161 satisfied with such admiration as I can honestly give. I call it a
3162 very fine country--the hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine
3163 timber, and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich meadows
3164 and several neat farm houses scattered here and there. It exactly
3165 answers my idea of a fine country, because it unites beauty with
3166 utility--and I dare say it is a picturesque one too, because you admire
3167 it; I can easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories, grey
3168 moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me. I know nothing of
3169 the picturesque."
3170
3171 "I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne; "but why should you
3172 boast of it?"
3173
3174 "I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind of affectation,
3175 Edward here falls into another. Because he believes many people
3176 pretend to more admiration of the beauties of nature than they really
3177 feel, and is disgusted with such pretensions, he affects greater
3178 indifference and less discrimination in viewing them himself than he
3179 possesses. He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
3180
3181 "It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration of landscape scenery
3182 is become a mere jargon. Every body pretends to feel and tries to
3183 describe with the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
3184 picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind, and sometimes I
3185 have kept my feelings to myself, because I could find no language to
3186 describe them in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and
3187 meaning."
3188
3189 "I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel all the delight in
3190 a fine prospect which you profess to feel. But, in return, your sister
3191 must allow me to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
3192 but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked, twisted,
3193 blasted trees. I admire them much more if they are tall, straight, and
3194 flourishing. I do not like ruined, tattered cottages. I am not fond
3195 of nettles or thistles, or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a
3196 snug farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy, happy villages
3197 please me better than the finest banditti in the world."
3198
3199 Marianne looked with amazement at Edward, with compassion at her
3200 sister. Elinor only laughed.
3201
3202 The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne remained
3203 thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly engaged her attention.
3204 She was sitting by Edward, and in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood,
3205 his hand passed so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
3206 of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
3207
3208 "I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried. "Is that
3209 Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give you some. But I should
3210 have thought her hair had been darker."
3211
3212 Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--but when she saw
3213 how much she had pained Edward, her own vexation at her want of thought
3214 could not be surpassed by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a
3215 momentary glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair. The
3216 setting always casts a different shade on it, you know."
3217
3218 Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise. That the hair
3219 was her own, she instantaneously felt as well satisfied as Marianne;
3220 the only difference in their conclusions was, that what Marianne
3221 considered as a free gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must
3222 have been procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
3223 She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront, and
3224 affecting to take no notice of what passed, by instantly talking of
3225 something else, she internally resolved henceforward to catch every
3226 opportunity of eyeing the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all
3227 doubt, that it was exactly the shade of her own.
3228
3229 Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it ended in an absence of
3230 mind still more settled. He was particularly grave the whole morning.
3231 Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said; but her own
3232 forgiveness might have been more speedy, had she known how little
3233 offence it had given her sister.
3234
3235 Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir John and Mrs.
3236 Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival of a gentleman at the
3237 cottage, came to take a survey of the guest. With the assistance of
3238 his mother-in-law, Sir John was not long in discovering that the name
3239 of Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine of raillery
3240 against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but the newness of their
3241 acquaintance with Edward could have prevented from being immediately
3242 sprung. But, as it was, she only learned, from some very significant
3243 looks, how far their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions,
3244 extended.
3245
3246 Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either inviting them to
3247 dine at the park the next day, or to drink tea with them that evening.
3248 On the present occasion, for the better entertainment of their visitor,
3249 towards whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute, he wished
3250 to engage them for both.
3251
3252 "You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he, "for we shall be quite
3253 alone--and tomorrow you must absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a
3254 large party."
3255
3256 Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows but you may raise
3257 a dance," said she. "And that will tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
3258
3259 "A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
3260
3261 "Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers to be sure.--What!
3262 you thought nobody could dance because a certain person that shall be
3263 nameless is gone!"
3264
3265 "I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John, "that Willoughby were among
3266 us again."
3267
3268 This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions to Edward. "And who
3269 is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice, to Miss Dashwood, by whom he
3270 was sitting.
3271
3272 She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance was more
3273 communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend, not only the meaning
3274 of others, but such of Marianne's expressions as had puzzled him
3275 before; and when their visitors left them, he went immediately round
3276 her, and said, in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
3277 my guess?"
3278
3279 "What do you mean?"
3280
3281 "Shall I tell you."
3282
3283 "Certainly."
3284
3285 "Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
3286
3287 Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could not help smiling at
3288 the quiet archness of his manner, and after a moment's silence, said,
3289
3290 "Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come I hope...I am sure
3291 you will like him."
3292
3293 "I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished at her earnestness
3294 and warmth; for had he not imagined it to be a joke for the good of her
3295 acquaintance in general, founded only on a something or a nothing
3296 between Mr. Willoughby and herself, he would not have ventured to
3297 mention it.
3298
3299
3300
3301 CHAPTER 19
3302
3303
3304 Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly pressed by Mrs.
3305 Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he were bent only on
3306 self-mortification, he seemed resolved to be gone when his enjoyment
3307 among his friends was at the height. His spirits, during the last two
3308 or three days, though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he
3309 grew more and more partial to the house and environs--never spoke of
3310 going away without a sigh--declared his time to be wholly
3311 disengaged--even doubted to what place he should go when he left
3312 them--but still, go he must. Never had any week passed so quickly--he
3313 could hardly believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other
3314 things he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave the
3315 lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland; he detested being
3316 in town; but either to Norland or London, he must go. He valued their
3317 kindness beyond any thing, and his greatest happiness was in being with
3318 them. Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite of their
3319 wishes and his own, and without any restraint on his time.
3320
3321 Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this way of acting to his
3322 mother's account; and it was happy for her that he had a mother whose
3323 character was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general excuse
3324 for every thing strange on the part of her son. Disappointed, however,
3325 and vexed as she was, and sometimes displeased with his uncertain
3326 behaviour to herself, she was very well disposed on the whole to regard
3327 his actions with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
3328 which had been rather more painfully extorted from her, for
3329 Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits, of openness,
3330 and of consistency, were most usually attributed to his want of
3331 independence, and his better knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition
3332 and designs. The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
3333 in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination, the same
3334 inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother. The old
3335 well-established grievance of duty against will, parent against child,
3336 was the cause of all. She would have been glad to know when these
3337 difficulties were to cease, this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs.
3338 Ferrars would be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy. But
3339 from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort to the renewal
3340 of her confidence in Edward's affection, to the remembrance of every
3341 mark of regard in look or word which fell from him while at Barton, and
3342 above all to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore round
3343 his finger.
3344
3345 "I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were at breakfast the
3346 last morning, "you would be a happier man if you had any profession to
3347 engage your time and give an interest to your plans and actions. Some
3348 inconvenience to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you would
3349 not be able to give them so much of your time. But (with a smile) you
3350 would be materially benefited in one particular at least--you would
3351 know where to go when you left them."
3352
3353 "I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long thought on this point,
3354 as you think now. It has been, and is, and probably will always be a
3355 heavy misfortune to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage
3356 me, no profession to give me employment, or afford me any thing like
3357 independence. But unfortunately my own nicety, and the nicety of my
3358 friends, have made me what I am, an idle, helpless being. We never
3359 could agree in our choice of a profession. I always preferred the
3360 church, as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
3361 They recommended the army. That was a great deal too smart for me.
3362 The law was allowed to be genteel enough; many young men, who had
3363 chambers in the Temple, made a very good appearance in the first
3364 circles, and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had no
3365 inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse study of it, which
3366 my family approved. As for the navy, it had fashion on its side, but I
3367 was too old when the subject was first started to enter it--and, at
3368 length, as there was no necessity for my having any profession at all,
3369 as I might be as dashing and expensive without a red coat on my back as
3370 with one, idleness was pronounced on the whole to be most advantageous
3371 and honourable, and a young man of eighteen is not in general so
3372 earnestly bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
3373 friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford and have been
3374 properly idle ever since."
3375
3376 "The consequence of which, I suppose, will be," said Mrs. Dashwood,
3377 "since leisure has not promoted your own happiness, that your sons will
3378 be brought up to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
3379 as Columella's."
3380
3381 "They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent, "to be as
3382 unlike myself as is possible. In feeling, in action, in condition, in
3383 every thing."
3384
3385 "Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate want of spirits,
3386 Edward. You are in a melancholy humour, and fancy that any one unlike
3387 yourself must be happy. But remember that the pain of parting from
3388 friends will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
3389 education or state. Know your own happiness. You want nothing but
3390 patience--or give it a more fascinating name, call it hope. Your
3391 mother will secure to you, in time, that independence you are so
3392 anxious for; it is her duty, and it will, it must ere long become her
3393 happiness to prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
3394 How much may not a few months do?"
3395
3396 "I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many months to produce any
3397 good to me."
3398
3399 This desponding turn of mind, though it could not be communicated to
3400 Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain to them all in the parting, which
3401 shortly took place, and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
3402 feelings especially, which required some trouble and time to subdue.
3403 But as it was her determination to subdue it, and to prevent herself
3404 from appearing to suffer more than what all her family suffered on his
3405 going away, she did not adopt the method so judiciously employed by
3406 Marianne, on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow, by
3407 seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means were as different
3408 as their objects, and equally suited to the advancement of each.
3409
3410 Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he was out of the
3411 house, busily employed herself the whole day, neither sought nor
3412 avoided the mention of his name, appeared to interest herself almost as
3413 much as ever in the general concerns of the family, and if, by this
3414 conduct, she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
3415 from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters were spared much
3416 solicitude on her account.
3417
3418 Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse of her own, appeared no
3419 more meritorious to Marianne, than her own had seemed faulty to her.
3420 The business of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
3421 affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could have no merit.
3422 That her sister's affections WERE calm, she dared not deny, though she
3423 blushed to acknowledge it; and of the strength of her own, she gave a
3424 very striking proof, by still loving and respecting that sister, in
3425 spite of this mortifying conviction.
3426
3427 Without shutting herself up from her family, or leaving the house in
3428 determined solitude to avoid them, or lying awake the whole night to
3429 indulge meditation, Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
3430 to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every possible
3431 variety which the different state of her spirits at different times
3432 could produce,--with tenderness, pity, approbation, censure, and doubt.
3433 There were moments in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her
3434 mother and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
3435 conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect of solitude was
3436 produced. Her mind was inevitably at liberty; her thoughts could not
3437 be chained elsewhere; and the past and the future, on a subject so
3438 interesting, must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
3439 her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
3440
3441 From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her drawing-table, she was
3442 roused one morning, soon after Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of
3443 company. She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the little
3444 gate, at the entrance of the green court in front of the house, drew
3445 her eyes to the window, and she saw a large party walking up to the
3446 door. Amongst them were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
3447 but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were quite unknown
3448 to her. She was sitting near the window, and as soon as Sir John
3449 perceived her, he left the rest of the party to the ceremony of
3450 knocking at the door, and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open
3451 the casement to speak to him, though the space was so short between the
3452 door and the window, as to make it hardly possible to speak at one
3453 without being heard at the other.
3454
3455 "Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers. How do you like
3456 them?"
3457
3458 "Hush! they will hear you."
3459
3460 "Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers. Charlotte is very
3461 pretty, I can tell you. You may see her if you look this way."
3462
3463 As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple of minutes, without
3464 taking that liberty, she begged to be excused.
3465
3466 "Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we are come? I see her
3467 instrument is open."
3468
3469 "She is walking, I believe."
3470
3471 They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not patience enough to
3472 wait till the door was opened before she told HER story. She came
3473 hallooing to the window, "How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs.
3474 Dashwood do? And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you will be
3475 glad of a little company to sit with you. I have brought my other son
3476 and daughter to see you. Only think of their coming so suddenly! I
3477 thought I heard a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
3478 but it never entered my head that it could be them. I thought of
3479 nothing but whether it might not be Colonel Brandon come back again; so
3480 I said to Sir John, I do think I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel
3481 Brandon come back again"--
3482
3483 Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle of her story, to
3484 receive the rest of the party; Lady Middleton introduced the two
3485 strangers; Mrs. Dashwood and Margaret came down stairs at the same
3486 time, and they all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
3487 continued her story as she walked through the passage into the parlour,
3488 attended by Sir John.
3489
3490 Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady Middleton, and totally
3491 unlike her in every respect. She was short and plump, had a very
3492 pretty face, and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
3493 possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant as her sister's,
3494 but they were much more prepossessing. She came in with a smile,
3495 smiled all the time of her visit, except when she laughed, and smiled
3496 when she went away. Her husband was a grave looking young man of five
3497 or six and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than his wife,
3498 but of less willingness to please or be pleased. He entered the room
3499 with a look of self-consequence, slightly bowed to the ladies, without
3500 speaking a word, and, after briefly surveying them and their
3501 apartments, took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read
3502 it as long as he staid.
3503
3504 Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed by nature with a
3505 turn for being uniformly civil and happy, was hardly seated before her
3506 admiration of the parlour and every thing in it burst forth.
3507
3508 "Well! what a delightful room this is! I never saw anything so
3509 charming! Only think, Mama, how it is improved since I was here last!
3510 I always thought it such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs.
3511 Dashwood) but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister, how
3512 delightful every thing is! How I should like such a house for myself!
3513 Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
3514
3515 Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise his eyes from the
3516 newspaper.
3517
3518 "Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing; "he never does
3519 sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
3520
3521 This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had never been used to
3522 find wit in the inattention of any one, and could not help looking with
3523 surprise at them both.
3524
3525 Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud as she could, and
3526 continued her account of their surprise, the evening before, on seeing
3527 their friends, without ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer
3528 laughed heartily at the recollection of their astonishment, and every
3529 body agreed, two or three times over, that it had been quite an
3530 agreeable surprise.
3531
3532 "You may believe how glad we all were to see them," added Mrs.
3533 Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor, and speaking in a low voice
3534 as if she meant to be heard by no one else, though they were seated on
3535 different sides of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they
3536 had not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey of it,
3537 for they came all round by London upon account of some business, for
3538 you know (nodding significantly and pointing to her daughter) it was
3539 wrong in her situation. I wanted her to stay at home and rest this
3540 morning, but she would come with us; she longed so much to see you all!"
3541
3542 Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her any harm.
3543
3544 "She expects to be confined in February," continued Mrs. Jennings.
3545
3546 Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation, and
3547 therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there was any news in
3548 the paper.
3549
3550 "No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
3551
3552 "Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer, you shall see a
3553 monstrous pretty girl."
3554
3555 He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door, and
3556 ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her, as soon as she
3557 appeared, if she had not been to Allenham; and Mrs. Palmer laughed so
3558 heartily at the question, as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer
3559 looked up on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes, and
3560 then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye was now caught by
3561 the drawings which hung round the room. She got up to examine them.
3562
3563 "Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful! Do but
3564 look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming; I could look
3565 at them for ever." And then sitting down again, she very soon forgot
3566 that there were any such things in the room.
3567
3568 When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer rose also, laid down
3569 the newspaper, stretched himself and looked at them all around.
3570
3571 "My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
3572
3573 He made her no answer; and only observed, after again examining the
3574 room, that it was very low pitched, and that the ceiling was crooked.
3575 He then made his bow, and departed with the rest.
3576
3577 Sir John had been very urgent with them all to spend the next day at
3578 the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did not chuse to dine with them oftener
3579 than they dined at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
3580 her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no curiosity to
3581 see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner, and no expectation of
3582 pleasure from them in any other way. They attempted, therefore,
3583 likewise, to excuse themselves; the weather was uncertain, and not
3584 likely to be good. But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage
3585 should be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too, though
3586 she did not press their mother, pressed them. Mrs. Jennings and Mrs.
3587 Palmer joined their entreaties, all seemed equally anxious to avoid a
3588 family party; and the young ladies were obliged to yield.
3589
3590 "Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they were gone.
3591 "The rent of this cottage is said to be low; but we have it on very
3592 hard terms, if we are to dine at the park whenever any one is staying
3593 either with them, or with us."
3594
3595 "They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now," said Elinor, "by
3596 these frequent invitations, than by those which we received from them a
3597 few weeks ago. The alteration is not in them, if their parties are
3598 grown tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
3599
3600
3601
3602 CHAPTER 20
3603
3604
3605 As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park the next
3606 day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at the other, looking as
3607 good humoured and merry as before. She took them all most
3608 affectionately by the hand, and expressed great delight in seeing them
3609 again.
3610
3611 "I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself between Elinor and
3612 Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was afraid you might not come,
3613 which would be a shocking thing, as we go away again tomorrow. We must
3614 go, for the Westons come to us next week you know. It was quite a
3615 sudden thing our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the
3616 carriage was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
3617 would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never tells me any
3618 thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer; however we shall meet again
3619 in town very soon, I hope."
3620
3621 They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
3622
3623 "Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh, "I shall be quite
3624 disappointed if you do not. I could get the nicest house in the world for
3625 you, next door to ours, in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I
3626 am sure I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till I am
3627 confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go into public."
3628
3629 They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all her entreaties.
3630
3631 "Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband, who just then entered
3632 the room--"you must help me to persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to
3633 town this winter."
3634
3635 Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing to the ladies, began
3636 complaining of the weather.
3637
3638 "How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather makes every thing and
3639 every body disgusting. Dullness is as much produced within doors as
3640 without, by rain. It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What
3641 the devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room in his
3642 house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir John is as stupid as
3643 the weather."
3644
3645 The rest of the company soon dropt in.
3646
3647 "I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have not been able to
3648 take your usual walk to Allenham today."
3649
3650 Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
3651
3652 "Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer; "for we know all
3653 about it, I assure you; and I admire your taste very much, for I think
3654 he is extremely handsome. We do not live a great way from him in the
3655 country, you know. Not above ten miles, I dare say."
3656
3657 "Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
3658
3659 "Ah, well! there is not much difference. I never was at his house; but
3660 they say it is a sweet pretty place."
3661
3662 "As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life," said Mr. Palmer.
3663
3664 Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her countenance betrayed her
3665 interest in what was said.
3666
3667 "Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it must be some other
3668 place that is so pretty I suppose."
3669
3670 When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John observed with regret
3671 that they were only eight all together.
3672
3673 "My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking that we should be
3674 so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts to come to us today?"
3675
3676 "Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me about it before,
3677 that it could not be done? They dined with us last."
3678
3679 "You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings, "should not stand upon such
3680 ceremony."
3681
3682 "Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
3683
3684 "My love you contradict every body," said his wife with her usual
3685 laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
3686
3687 "I did not know I contradicted any body in calling your mother
3688 ill-bred."
3689
3690 "Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured old lady,
3691 "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot give her back again.
3692 So there I have the whip hand of you."
3693
3694 Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her husband could not get rid
3695 of her; and exultingly said, she did not care how cross he was to her,
3696 as they must live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
3697 thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy than Mrs.
3698 Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence, and discontent of her
3699 husband gave her no pain; and when he scolded or abused her, she was
3700 highly diverted.
3701
3702 "Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper, to Elinor. "He is
3703 always out of humour."
3704
3705 Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation, to give him credit
3706 for being so genuinely and unaffectedly ill-natured or ill-bred as he
3707 wished to appear. His temper might perhaps be a little soured by
3708 finding, like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
3709 bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
3710 woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too common for any
3711 sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.-- It was rather a wish of
3712 distinction, she believed, which produced his contemptuous treatment of
3713 every body, and his general abuse of every thing before him. It was
3714 the desire of appearing superior to other people. The motive was too
3715 common to be wondered at; but the means, however they might succeed by
3716 establishing his superiority in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach
3717 any one to him except his wife.
3718
3719 "Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards, "I have
3720 got such a favour to ask of you and your sister. Will you come and
3721 spend some time at Cleveland this Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come
3722 while the Westons are with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be!
3723 It will be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband, "don't
3724 you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
3725
3726 "Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came into Devonshire with no
3727 other view."
3728
3729 "There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer expects you; so you
3730 cannot refuse to come."
3731
3732 They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
3733
3734 "But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you will like it of all
3735 things. The Westons will be with us, and it will be quite delightful.
3736 You cannot think what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay
3737 now, for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
3738 against the election; and so many people came to dine with us that I
3739 never saw before, it is quite charming! But, poor fellow! it is very
3740 fatiguing to him! for he is forced to make every body like him."
3741
3742 Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she assented to the
3743 hardship of such an obligation.
3744
3745 "How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he is in
3746 Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will be so ridiculous to
3747 see all his letters directed to him with an M.P.--But do you know, he
3748 says, he will never frank for me? He declares he won't. Don't you,
3749 Mr. Palmer?"
3750
3751 Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
3752
3753 "He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--"he says it is quite
3754 shocking."
3755
3756 "No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational. Don't palm all
3757 your abuses of languages upon me."
3758
3759 "There now; you see how droll he is. This is always the way with him!
3760 Sometimes he won't speak to me for half a day together, and then he
3761 comes out with something so droll--all about any thing in the world."
3762
3763 She surprised Elinor very much as they returned into the drawing-room,
3764 by asking her whether she did not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
3765
3766 "Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
3767
3768 "Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would, he is so pleasant;
3769 and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased with you and your sisters I can
3770 tell you, and you can't think how disappointed he will be if you don't
3771 come to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object to it."
3772
3773 Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation; and by changing the
3774 subject, put a stop to her entreaties. She thought it probable that as
3775 they lived in the same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
3776 more particular account of Willoughby's general character, than could
3777 be gathered from the Middletons' partial acquaintance with him; and she
3778 was eager to gain from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as
3779 might remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began by
3780 inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland, and whether
3781 they were intimately acquainted with him.
3782
3783 "Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well," replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not
3784 that I ever spoke to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
3785 Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton while he was
3786 at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--but I was with my uncle
3787 at Weymouth. However, I dare say we should have seen a great deal of
3788 him in Somersetshire, if it had not happened very unluckily that we
3789 should never have been in the country together. He is very little at
3790 Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there, I do not think Mr.
3791 Palmer would visit him, for he is in the opposition, you know, and
3792 besides it is such a way off. I know why you inquire about him, very
3793 well; your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it, for then
3794 I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
3795
3796 "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much more of the matter than
3797 I do, if you have any reason to expect such a match."
3798
3799 "Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is what every body talks
3800 of. I assure you I heard of it in my way through town."
3801
3802 "My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
3803
3804 "Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon Monday morning in
3805 Bond-street, just before we left town, and he told me of it directly."
3806
3807 "You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell you of it! Surely
3808 you must be mistaken. To give such intelligence to a person who could
3809 not be interested in it, even if it were true, is not what I should
3810 expect Colonel Brandon to do."
3811
3812 "But I do assure you it was so, for all that, and I will tell you how
3813 it happened. When we met him, he turned back and walked with us; and
3814 so we began talking of my brother and sister, and one thing and
3815 another, and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family come to
3816 Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word they are very pretty,
3817 and that one of them is going to be married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe
3818 Magna. Is it true, pray? for of course you must know, as you have been
3819 in Devonshire so lately.'"
3820
3821 "And what did the Colonel say?"
3822
3823 "Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he knew it to be true, so
3824 from that moment I set it down as certain. It will be quite
3825 delightful, I declare! When is it to take place?"
3826
3827 "Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
3828
3829 "Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises, he did nothing but
3830 say fine things of you."
3831
3832 "I am flattered by his commendation. He seems an excellent man; and I
3833 think him uncommonly pleasing."
3834
3835 "So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it is quite a pity he should
3836 be so grave and so dull. Mama says HE was in love with your sister
3837 too.-- I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he hardly
3838 ever falls in love with any body."
3839
3840 "Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part of Somersetshire?" said
3841 Elinor.
3842
3843 "Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe many people are
3844 acquainted with him, because Combe Magna is so far off; but they all
3845 think him extremely agreeable I assure you. Nobody is more liked than
3846 Mr. Willoughby wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister. She
3847 is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour; not but that he
3848 is much more lucky in getting her, because she is so very handsome and
3849 agreeable, that nothing can be good enough for her. However, I don't
3850 think her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you; for I think
3851 you both excessively pretty, and so does Mr. Palmer too I am sure,
3852 though we could not get him to own it last night."
3853
3854 Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby was not very material;
3855 but any testimony in his favour, however small, was pleasing to her.
3856
3857 "I am so glad we are got acquainted at last," continued
3858 Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be great friends. You
3859 can't think how much I longed to see you! It is so delightful that you
3860 should live at the cottage! Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I
3861 am so glad your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will be
3862 a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place, by all accounts."
3863
3864 "You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon, have not you?"
3865
3866 "Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.-- He was a
3867 particular friend of Sir John's. I believe," she added in a low voice,
3868 "he would have been very glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John
3869 and Lady Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think the
3870 match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would have mentioned it to
3871 the Colonel, and we should have been married immediately."
3872
3873 "Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal to your mother
3874 before it was made? Had he never owned his affection to yourself?"
3875
3876 "Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it, I dare say he would have
3877 liked it of all things. He had not seen me then above twice, for it
3878 was before I left school. However, I am much happier as I am. Mr.
3879 Palmer is the kind of man I like."
3880
3881
3882
3883 CHAPTER 21
3884
3885
3886 The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day, and the two families at
3887 Barton were again left to entertain each other. But this did not last
3888 long; Elinor had hardly got their last visitors out of her head, had
3889 hardly done wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause, at
3890 Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities, and at the strange
3891 unsuitableness which often existed between husband and wife, before Sir
3892 John's and Mrs. Jennings's active zeal in the cause of society,
3893 procured her some other new acquaintance to see and observe.
3894
3895 In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with two young ladies,
3896 whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction of discovering to be her
3897 relations, and this was enough for Sir John to invite them directly to
3898 the park, as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
3899 Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before such an
3900 invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into no little alarm on the
3901 return of Sir John, by hearing that she was very soon to receive a
3902 visit from two girls whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose
3903 elegance,--whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof; for
3904 the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject went for
3905 nothing at all. Their being her relations too made it so much the
3906 worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts at consolation were therefore
3907 unfortunately founded, when she advised her daughter not to care about
3908 their being so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
3909 up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to prevent
3910 their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the idea of it, with
3911 all the philosophy of a well-bred woman, contenting herself with merely
3912 giving her husband a gentle reprimand on the subject five or six times
3913 every day.
3914
3915 The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by no means ungenteel or
3916 unfashionable. Their dress was very smart, their manners very civil,
3917 they were delighted with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
3918 and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children that Lady
3919 Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their favour before they had
3920 been an hour at the Park. She declared them to be very agreeable girls
3921 indeed, which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration. Sir John's
3922 confidence in his own judgment rose with this animated praise, and he
3923 set off directly for the cottage to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss
3924 Steeles' arrival, and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
3925 in the world. From such commendation as this, however, there was not
3926 much to be learned; Elinor well knew that the sweetest girls in the
3927 world were to be met with in every part of England, under every
3928 possible variation of form, face, temper and understanding. Sir John
3929 wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly and look at his
3930 guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It was painful to him even to
3931 keep a third cousin to himself.
3932
3933 "Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I declare you shall
3934 come--You can't think how you will like them. Lucy is monstrous
3935 pretty, and so good humoured and agreeable! The children are all
3936 hanging about her already, as if she was an old acquaintance. And they
3937 both long to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter that
3938 you are the most beautiful creatures in the world; and I have told them
3939 it is all very true, and a great deal more. You will be delighted with
3940 them I am sure. They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
3941 for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come? Why they
3942 are your cousins, you know, after a fashion. YOU are my cousins, and
3943 they are my wife's, so you must be related."
3944
3945 But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain a promise of
3946 their calling at the Park within a day or two, and then left them in
3947 amazement at their indifference, to walk home and boast anew of their
3948 attractions to the Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the
3949 Miss Steeles to them.
3950
3951 When their promised visit to the Park and consequent introduction to
3952 these young ladies took place, they found in the appearance of the
3953 eldest, who was nearly thirty, with a very plain and not a sensible
3954 face, nothing to admire; but in the other, who was not more than two or
3955 three and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her features
3956 were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye, and a smartness of air,
3957 which though it did not give actual elegance or grace, gave distinction
3958 to her person.-- Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
3959 allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she saw with what
3960 constant and judicious attention they were making themselves agreeable
3961 to Lady Middleton. With her children they were in continual raptures,
3962 extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring their
3963 whims; and such of their time as could be spared from the importunate
3964 demands which this politeness made on it, was spent in admiration of
3965 whatever her ladyship was doing, if she happened to be doing any thing,
3966 or in taking patterns of some elegant new dress, in which her
3967 appearance the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
3968 Fortunately for those who pay their court through such foibles, a fond
3969 mother, though, in pursuit of praise for her children, the most
3970 rapacious of human beings, is likewise the most credulous; her demands
3971 are exorbitant; but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
3972 affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards her offspring were
3973 viewed therefore by Lady Middleton without the smallest surprise or
3974 distrust. She saw with maternal complacency all the impertinent
3975 encroachments and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
3976 She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about their ears, their
3977 work-bags searched, and their knives and scissors stolen away, and felt
3978 no doubt of its being a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other
3979 surprise than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
3980 without claiming a share in what was passing.
3981
3982 "John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his taking Miss Steeles's
3983 pocket handkerchief, and throwing it out of window--"He is full of
3984 monkey tricks."
3985
3986 And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently pinching one of the
3987 same lady's fingers, she fondly observed, "How playful William is!"
3988
3989 "And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added, tenderly caressing
3990 a little girl of three years old, who had not made a noise for the last
3991 two minutes; "And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
3992 such a quiet little thing!"
3993
3994 But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces, a pin in her ladyship's
3995 head dress slightly scratching the child's neck, produced from this
3996 pattern of gentleness such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone
3997 by any creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation was
3998 excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the Miss Steeles, and
3999 every thing was done by all three, in so critical an emergency, which
4000 affection could suggest as likely to assuage the agonies of the little
4001 sufferer. She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses, her
4002 wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the Miss Steeles, who was
4003 on her knees to attend her, and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by
4004 the other. With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise to
4005 cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily, kicked her two
4006 brothers for offering to touch her, and all their united soothings were
4007 ineffectual till Lady Middleton luckily remembering that in a scene of
4008 similar distress last week, some apricot marmalade had been
4009 successfully applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
4010 proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight intermission of
4011 screams in the young lady on hearing it, gave them reason to hope that
4012 it would not be rejected.-- She was carried out of the room therefore
4013 in her mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the two boys
4014 chose to follow, though earnestly entreated by their mother to stay
4015 behind, the four young ladies were left in a quietness which the room
4016 had not known for many hours.
4017
4018 "Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon as they were gone.
4019 "It might have been a very sad accident."
4020
4021 "Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it had been under
4022 totally different circumstances. But this is the usual way of
4023 heightening alarm, where there is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
4024
4025 "What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
4026
4027 Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say what she did not
4028 feel, however trivial the occasion; and upon Elinor therefore the whole
4029 task of telling lies when politeness required it, always fell. She did
4030 her best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton with more
4031 warmth than she felt, though with far less than Miss Lucy.
4032
4033 "And Sir John too," cried the elder sister, "what a charming man he is!"
4034
4035 Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only simple and just,
4036 came in without any eclat. She merely observed that he was perfectly
4037 good humoured and friendly.
4038
4039 "And what a charming little family they have! I never saw such fine
4040 children in my life.--I declare I quite doat upon them already, and
4041 indeed I am always distractedly fond of children."
4042
4043 "I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile, "from what I have
4044 witnessed this morning."
4045
4046 "I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little Middletons rather
4047 too much indulged; perhaps they may be the outside of enough; but it is
4048 so natural in Lady Middleton; and for my part, I love to see children
4049 full of life and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and
4050 quiet."
4051
4052 "I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at Barton Park, I never
4053 think of tame and quiet children with any abhorrence."
4054
4055 A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first broken by Miss
4056 Steele, who seemed very much disposed for conversation, and who now
4057 said rather abruptly, "And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood?
4058 I suppose you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
4059
4060 In some surprise at the familiarity of this question, or at least of
4061 the manner in which it was spoken, Elinor replied that she was.
4062
4063 "Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?" added Miss Steele.
4064
4065 "We have heard Sir John admire it excessively," said Lucy, who seemed
4066 to think some apology necessary for the freedom of her sister.
4067
4068 "I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor, "who ever saw the
4069 place; though it is not to be supposed that any one can estimate its
4070 beauties as we do."
4071
4072 "And had you a great many smart beaux there? I suppose you have not so
4073 many in this part of the world; for my part, I think they are a vast
4074 addition always."
4075
4076 "But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed of her sister,
4077 "that there are not as many genteel young men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
4078
4079 "Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there an't. I'm
4080 sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter; but you know, how could
4081 I tell what smart beaux there might be about Norland; and I was only
4082 afraid the Miss Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
4083 so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies may not
4084 care about the beaux, and had as lief be without them as with them.
4085 For my part, I think they are vastly agreeable, provided they dress
4086 smart and behave civil. But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty.
4087 Now there's Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man, quite a
4088 beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you do but meet him of
4089 a morning, he is not fit to be seen.-- I suppose your brother was quite
4090 a beau, Miss Dashwood, before he married, as he was so rich?"
4091
4092 "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you, for I do not
4093 perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word. But this I can say, that
4094 if he ever was a beau before he married, he is one still for there is
4095 not the smallest alteration in him."
4096
4097 "Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being beaux--they have
4098 something else to do."
4099
4100 "Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of nothing but
4101 beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you think of nothing else."
4102 And then to turn the discourse, she began admiring the house and the
4103 furniture.
4104
4105 This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough. The vulgar freedom and
4106 folly of the eldest left her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not
4107 blinded by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest, to her want
4108 of real elegance and artlessness, she left the house without any wish
4109 of knowing them better.
4110
4111 Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well provided with
4112 admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton, his family, and all his
4113 relations, and no niggardly proportion was now dealt out to his fair
4114 cousins, whom they declared to be the most beautiful, elegant,
4115 accomplished, and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
4116 they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.-- And to be
4117 better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found was their inevitable
4118 lot, for as Sir John was entirely on the side of the Miss Steeles,
4119 their party would be too strong for opposition, and that kind of
4120 intimacy must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour or two
4121 together in the same room almost every day. Sir John could do no more;
4122 but he did not know that any more was required: to be together was, in
4123 his opinion, to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
4124 meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being established
4125 friends.
4126
4127 To do him justice, he did every thing in his power to promote their
4128 unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles acquainted with whatever he knew
4129 or supposed of his cousins' situations in the most delicate
4130 particulars,--and Elinor had not seen them more than twice, before the
4131 eldest of them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky as
4132 to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she came to Barton.
4133
4134 "'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young to be sure," said
4135 she, "and I hear he is quite a beau, and prodigious handsome. And I
4136 hope you may have as good luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have
4137 a friend in the corner already."
4138
4139 Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more nice in
4140 proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward, than he had been
4141 with respect to Marianne; indeed it was rather his favourite joke of
4142 the two, as being somewhat newer and more conjectural; and since
4143 Edward's visit, they had never dined together without his drinking to
4144 her best affections with so much significancy and so many nods and
4145 winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--had been likewise
4146 invariably brought forward, and found productive of such countless
4147 jokes, that its character as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had
4148 been long established with Elinor.
4149
4150 The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the benefit of these
4151 jokes, and in the eldest of them they raised a curiosity to know the
4152 name of the gentleman alluded to, which, though often impertinently
4153 expressed, was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
4154 into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not sport long
4155 with the curiosity which he delighted to raise, for he had at least as
4156 much pleasure in telling the name, as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
4157
4158 "His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper; "but pray do
4159 not tell it, for it's a great secret."
4160
4161 "Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is the happy man, is he?
4162 What! your sister-in-law's brother, Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable
4163 young man to be sure; I know him very well."
4164
4165 "How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally made an amendment
4166 to all her sister's assertions. "Though we have seen him once or twice
4167 at my uncle's, it is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
4168
4169 Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise. "And who was this
4170 uncle? Where did he live? How came they acquainted?" She wished very
4171 much to have the subject continued, though she did not chuse to join in
4172 it herself; but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time in
4173 her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either in curiosity after
4174 petty information, or in a disposition to communicate it. The manner
4175 in which Miss Steele had spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for
4176 it struck her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
4177 of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something to his
4178 disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing, for no farther notice
4179 was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by Miss Steele when alluded to, or even
4180 openly mentioned by Sir John.
4181
4182
4183
4184 CHAPTER 22
4185
4186
4187 Marianne, who had never much toleration for any thing like
4188 impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts, or even difference of
4189 taste from herself, was at this time particularly ill-disposed, from
4190 the state of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles, or to
4191 encourage their advances; and to the invariable coldness of her
4192 behaviour towards them, which checked every endeavour at intimacy on
4193 their side, Elinor principally attributed that preference of herself
4194 which soon became evident in the manners of both, but especially of
4195 Lucy, who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation, or of
4196 striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy and frank
4197 communication of her sentiments.
4198
4199 Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often just and amusing; and
4200 as a companion for half an hour Elinor frequently found her agreeable;
4201 but her powers had received no aid from education: she was ignorant and
4202 illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement, her want of
4203 information in the most common particulars, could not be concealed from
4204 Miss Dashwood, in spite of her constant endeavour to appear to
4205 advantage. Elinor saw, and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities
4206 which education might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with
4207 less tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy, of
4208 rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions, her
4209 assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed; and she could have no
4210 lasting satisfaction in the company of a person who joined insincerity
4211 with ignorance; whose want of instruction prevented their meeting in
4212 conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct toward others made
4213 every shew of attention and deference towards herself perfectly
4214 valueless.
4215
4216 "You will think my question an odd one, I dare say," said Lucy to her
4217 one day, as they were walking together from the park to the
4218 cottage--"but pray, are you personally acquainted with your
4219 sister-in-law's mother, Mrs. Ferrars?"
4220
4221 Elinor DID think the question a very odd one, and her countenance
4222 expressed it, as she answered that she had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
4223
4224 "Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I thought you must have
4225 seen her at Norland sometimes. Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what
4226 sort of a woman she is?"
4227
4228 "No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real opinion of Edward's
4229 mother, and not very desirous of satisfying what seemed impertinent
4230 curiosity-- "I know nothing of her."
4231
4232 "I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring about her in such a
4233 way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively as she spoke; "but perhaps
4234 there may be reasons--I wish I might venture; but however I hope you
4235 will do me the justice of believing that I do not mean to be
4236 impertinent."
4237
4238 Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on for a few minutes in
4239 silence. It was broken by Lucy, who renewed the subject again by
4240 saying, with some hesitation,
4241
4242 "I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious. I am sure I
4243 would rather do any thing in the world than be thought so by a person
4244 whose good opinion is so well worth having as yours. And I am sure I
4245 should not have the smallest fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be
4246 very glad of your advice how to manage in such an uncomfortable
4247 situation as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
4248 I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
4249
4250 "I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment, "if it could
4251 be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her. But really I never
4252 understood that you were at all connected with that family, and
4253 therefore I am a little surprised, I confess, at so serious an inquiry
4254 into her character."
4255
4256 "I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all wonder at it. But
4257 if I dared tell you all, you would not be so much surprised. Mrs.
4258 Ferrars is certainly nothing to me at present--but the time MAY
4259 come--how soon it will come must depend upon herself--when we may be
4260 very intimately connected."
4261
4262 She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful, with only one side
4263 glance at her companion to observe its effect on her.
4264
4265 "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean? Are you acquainted
4266 with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?" And she did not feel much
4267 delighted with the idea of such a sister-in-law.
4268
4269 "No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I never saw him in my
4270 life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor, "to his eldest brother."
4271
4272 What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment, that would have been as
4273 painful as it was strong, had not an immediate disbelief of the
4274 assertion attended it. She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement,
4275 unable to divine the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
4276 her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity, and felt in no
4277 danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
4278
4279 "You may well be surprised," continued Lucy; "for to be sure you could
4280 have had no idea of it before; for I dare say he never dropped the
4281 smallest hint of it to you or any of your family; because it was always
4282 meant to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully kept so
4283 by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations know of it but
4284 Anne, and I never should have mentioned it to you, if I had not felt
4285 the greatest dependence in the world upon your secrecy; and I really
4286 thought my behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
4287 must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained. And I do not think
4288 Mr. Ferrars can be displeased, when he knows I have trusted you,
4289 because I know he has the highest opinion in the world of all your
4290 family, and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite as
4291 his own sisters."--She paused.
4292
4293 Elinor for a few moments remained silent. Her astonishment at what she
4294 heard was at first too great for words; but at length forcing herself
4295 to speak, and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
4296 which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude-- "May I ask
4297 if your engagement is of long standing?"
4298
4299 "We have been engaged these four years."
4300
4301 "Four years!"
4302
4303 "Yes."
4304
4305 Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable to believe it.
4306
4307 "I did not know," said she, "that you were even acquainted till the
4308 other day."
4309
4310 "Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date. He was under my
4311 uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
4312
4313 "Your uncle!"
4314
4315 "Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk of Mr. Pratt?"
4316
4317 "I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion of spirits, which
4318 increased with her increase of emotion.
4319
4320 "He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple, near
4321 Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun, for my sister and me
4322 was often staying with my uncle, and it was there our engagement was
4323 formed, though not till a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he
4324 was almost always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
4325 into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and approbation of
4326 his mother; but I was too young, and loved him too well, to be so
4327 prudent as I ought to have been.-- Though you do not know him so well
4328 as me, Miss Dashwood, you must have seen enough of him to be sensible
4329 he is very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
4330
4331 "Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what she said; but after
4332 a moment's reflection, she added, with revived security of Edward's
4333 honour and love, and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
4334 Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at what you tell me,
4335 that really--I beg your pardon; but surely there must be some mistake
4336 of person or name. We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
4337
4338 "We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward Ferrars, the
4339 eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street, and brother of your
4340 sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood, is the person I mean; you must allow
4341 that I am not likely to be deceived as to the name of the man on who
4342 all my happiness depends."
4343
4344 "It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity, "that I
4345 should never have heard him even mention your name."
4346
4347 "No; considering our situation, it was not strange. Our first care has
4348 been to keep the matter secret.-- You knew nothing of me, or my family,
4349 and, therefore, there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
4350 to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his sister's
4351 suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough for his not mentioning it."
4352
4353 She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her self-command did not
4354 sink with it.
4355
4356 "Four years you have been engaged," said she with a firm voice.
4357
4358 "Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have to wait. Poor
4359 Edward! It puts him quite out of heart." Then taking a small miniature
4360 from her pocket, she added, "To prevent the possibility of mistake, be
4361 so good as to look at this face. It does not do him justice, to be
4362 sure, but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person it was
4363 drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
4364
4365 She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor saw the
4366 painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a too hasty decision, or
4367 her wish of detecting falsehood might suffer to linger in her mind, she
4368 could have none of its being Edward's face. She returned it almost
4369 instantly, acknowledging the likeness.
4370
4371 "I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give him my picture in
4372 return, which I am very much vexed at, for he has been always so
4373 anxious to get it! But I am determined to set for it the very first
4374 opportunity."
4375
4376 "You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly. They then
4377 proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
4378
4379 "I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world of your faithfully
4380 keeping this secret, because you must know of what importance it is to
4381 us, not to have it reach his mother; for she would never approve of it,
4382 I dare say. I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
4383 proud woman."
4384
4385 "I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor; "but you do me
4386 no more than justice in imagining that I may be depended on. Your
4387 secret is safe with me; but pardon me if I express some surprise at so
4388 unnecessary a communication. You must at least have felt that my being
4389 acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
4390
4391 As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy, hoping to discover
4392 something in her countenance; perhaps the falsehood of the greatest
4393 part of what she had been saying; but Lucy's countenance suffered no
4394 change.
4395
4396 "I was afraid you would think I was taking a great liberty with you,"
4397 said she, "in telling you all this. I have not known you long to be
4398 sure, personally at least, but I have known you and all your family by
4399 description a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as
4400 if you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case, I really
4401 thought some explanation was due to you after my making such particular
4402 inquiries about Edward's mother; and I am so unfortunate, that I have
4403 not a creature whose advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that
4404 knows of it, and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a
4405 great deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
4406 betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue, as you must
4407 perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest fright in the world
4408 t'other day, when Edward's name was mentioned by Sir John, lest she
4409 should out with it all. You can't think how much I go through in my
4410 mind from it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what I
4411 have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years. Every thing in
4412 such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing him so seldom--we can hardly
4413 meet above twice a-year. I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite
4414 broke."
4415
4416 Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did not feel very
4417 compassionate.
4418
4419 "Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes, "I think whether it
4420 would not be better for us both to break off the matter entirely." As
4421 she said this, she looked directly at her companion. "But then at
4422 other times I have not resolution enough for it.-- I cannot bear the
4423 thoughts of making him so miserable, as I know the very mention of such
4424 a thing would do. And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I
4425 don't think I could be equal to it. What would you advise me to do in
4426 such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you do yourself?"
4427
4428 "Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question; "but I can give
4429 you no advice under such circumstances. Your own judgment must direct
4430 you."
4431
4432 "To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes silence on both
4433 sides, "his mother must provide for him sometime or other; but poor
4434 Edward is so cast down by it! Did you not think him dreadful
4435 low-spirited when he was at Barton? He was so miserable when he left
4436 us at Longstaple, to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him
4437 quite ill."
4438
4439 "Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
4440
4441 "Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us. Did you think he
4442 came directly from town?"
4443
4444 "No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of every fresh
4445 circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity; "I remember he told us, that
4446 he had been staying a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth." She
4447 remembered too, her own surprise at the time, at his mentioning nothing
4448 farther of those friends, at his total silence with respect even to
4449 their names.
4450
4451 "Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?" repeated Lucy.
4452
4453 "We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
4454
4455 "I begged him to exert himself for fear you should suspect what was the
4456 matter; but it made him so melancholy, not being able to stay more than
4457 a fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.-- Poor fellow!--I
4458 am afraid it is just the same with him now; for he writes in wretched
4459 spirits. I heard from him just before I left Exeter;" taking a letter
4460 from her pocket and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor. "You
4461 know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is; but that is not
4462 written so well as usual.--He was tired, I dare say, for he had just
4463 filled the sheet to me as full as possible."
4464
4465 Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt no longer. This
4466 picture, she had allowed herself to believe, might have been
4467 accidentally obtained; it might not have been Edward's gift; but a
4468 correspondence between them by letter, could subsist only under a
4469 positive engagement, could be authorised by nothing else; for a few
4470 moments, she was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she
4471 could hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary; and she
4472 struggled so resolutely against the oppression of her feelings, that
4473 her success was speedy, and for the time complete.
4474
4475 "Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the letter into her
4476 pocket, "is the only comfort we have in such long separations. Yes, I
4477 have one other comfort in his picture, but poor Edward has not even
4478 THAT. If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy. I gave him
4479 a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at Longstaple last, and
4480 that was some comfort to him, he said, but not equal to a picture.
4481 Perhaps you might notice the ring when you saw him?"
4482
4483 "I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice, under which was
4484 concealed an emotion and distress beyond any thing she had ever felt
4485 before. She was mortified, shocked, confounded.
4486
4487 Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage, and the
4488 conversation could be continued no farther. After sitting with them a
4489 few minutes, the Miss Steeles returned to the Park, and Elinor was then
4490 at liberty to think and be wretched.
4491
4492
4493
4494
4495
4496 [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501
4502 CHAPTER 23
4503
4504
4505 However small Elinor's general dependence on Lucy's veracity might be,
4506 it was impossible for her on serious reflection to suspect it in the
4507 present case, where no temptation could be answerable to the folly of
4508 inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy had asserted to
4509 be true, therefore, Elinor could not, dared not longer doubt; supported
4510 as it was too on every side by such probabilities and proofs, and
4511 contradicted by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
4512 acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation for the rest,
4513 at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's visit near Plymouth,
4514 his melancholy state of mind, his dissatisfaction at his own prospects,
4515 his uncertain behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
4516 Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections, which had
4517 often surprised her, the picture, the letter, the ring, formed
4518 altogether such a body of evidence, as overcame every fear of
4519 condemning him unfairly, and established as a fact, which no partiality
4520 could set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment of such
4521 behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe, for a short time
4522 made her feel only for herself; but other ideas, other considerations,
4523 soon arose. Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he
4524 feigned a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement to
4525 Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might once have been,
4526 she could not believe it such at present. His affection was all her
4527 own. She could not be deceived in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny,
4528 all had been conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not an
4529 illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her. What a softener
4530 of the heart was this persuasion! How much could it not tempt her to
4531 forgive! He had been blamable, highly blamable, in remaining at
4532 Norland after he first felt her influence over him to be more than it
4533 ought to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he had injured
4534 her, how much more had he injured himself; if her case were pitiable,
4535 his was hopeless. His imprudence had made her miserable for a while;
4536 but it seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever being
4537 otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity; but HE, what had he
4538 to look forward to? Could he ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele;
4539 could he, were his affection for herself out of the question, with his
4540 integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind, be satisfied with a
4541 wife like her--illiterate, artful, and selfish?
4542
4543 The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally blind him to every
4544 thing but her beauty and good nature; but the four succeeding
4545 years--years, which if rationally spent, give such improvement to the
4546 understanding, must have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
4547 while the same period of time, spent on her side in inferior society
4548 and more frivolous pursuits, had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity
4549 which might once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
4550
4551 If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself, his difficulties
4552 from his mother had seemed great, how much greater were they now likely
4553 to be, when the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior in
4554 connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself. These
4555 difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated from Lucy, might not
4556 press very hard upon his patience; but melancholy was the state of the
4557 person by whom the expectation of family opposition and unkindness,
4558 could be felt as a relief!
4559
4560 As these considerations occurred to her in painful succession, she wept
4561 for him, more than for herself. Supported by the conviction of having
4562 done nothing to merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the
4563 belief that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem, she thought
4564 she could even now, under the first smart of the heavy blow, command
4565 herself enough to guard every suspicion of the truth from her mother
4566 and sisters. And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
4567 that when she joined them at dinner only two hours after she had first
4568 suffered the extinction of all her dearest hopes, no one would have
4569 supposed from the appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
4570 in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever from the object
4571 of her love, and that Marianne was internally dwelling on the
4572 perfections of a man, of whose whole heart she felt thoroughly
4573 possessed, and whom she expected to see in every carriage which drove
4574 near their house.
4575
4576 The necessity of concealing from her mother and Marianne, what had been
4577 entrusted in confidence to herself, though it obliged her to unceasing
4578 exertion, was no aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary it
4579 was a relief to her, to be spared the communication of what would give
4580 such affliction to them, and to be saved likewise from hearing that
4581 condemnation of Edward, which would probably flow from the excess of
4582 their partial affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
4583 equal to support.
4584
4585 From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew she could receive
4586 no assistance, their tenderness and sorrow must add to her distress,
4587 while her self-command would neither receive encouragement from their
4588 example nor from their praise. She was stronger alone, and her own
4589 good sense so well supported her, that her firmness was as unshaken,
4590 her appearance of cheerfulness as invariable, as with regrets so
4591 poignant and so fresh, it was possible for them to be.
4592
4593 Much as she had suffered from her first conversation with Lucy on the
4594 subject, she soon felt an earnest wish of renewing it; and this for
4595 more reasons than one. She wanted to hear many particulars of their
4596 engagement repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand what
4597 Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any sincerity in her
4598 declaration of tender regard for him, and she particularly wanted to
4599 convince Lucy, by her readiness to enter on the matter again, and her
4600 calmness in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested in
4601 it than as a friend, which she very much feared her involuntary
4602 agitation, in their morning discourse, must have left at least
4603 doubtful. That Lucy was disposed to be jealous of her appeared very
4604 probable: it was plain that Edward had always spoken highly in her
4605 praise, not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing to
4606 trust her on so short a personal acquaintance, with a secret so
4607 confessedly and evidently important. And even Sir John's joking
4608 intelligence must have had some weight. But indeed, while Elinor
4609 remained so well assured within herself of being really beloved by
4610 Edward, it required no other consideration of probabilities to make it
4611 natural that Lucy should be jealous; and that she was so, her very
4612 confidence was a proof. What other reason for the disclosure of the
4613 affair could there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of
4614 Lucy's superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him in future?
4615 She had little difficulty in understanding thus much of her rival's
4616 intentions, and while she was firmly resolved to act by her as every
4617 principle of honour and honesty directed, to combat her own affection
4618 for Edward and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
4619 herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy that her heart was
4620 unwounded. And as she could now have nothing more painful to hear on
4621 the subject than had already been told, she did not mistrust her own
4622 ability of going through a repetition of particulars with composure.
4623
4624 But it was not immediately that an opportunity of doing so could be
4625 commanded, though Lucy was as well disposed as herself to take
4626 advantage of any that occurred; for the weather was not often fine
4627 enough to allow of their joining in a walk, where they might most
4628 easily separate themselves from the others; and though they met at
4629 least every other evening either at the park or cottage, and chiefly at
4630 the former, they could not be supposed to meet for the sake of
4631 conversation. Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
4632 Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure was ever given for
4633 a general chat, and none at all for particular discourse. They met for
4634 the sake of eating, drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
4635 or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
4636
4637 One or two meetings of this kind had taken place, without affording
4638 Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy in private, when Sir John called at
4639 the cottage one morning, to beg, in the name of charity, that they
4640 would all dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged to
4641 attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be quite alone,
4642 except her mother and the two Miss Steeles. Elinor, who foresaw a
4643 fairer opening for the point she had in view, in such a party as this
4644 was likely to be, more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
4645 and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when her husband united
4646 them together in one noisy purpose, immediately accepted the
4647 invitation; Margaret, with her mother's permission, was equally
4648 compliant, and Marianne, though always unwilling to join any of their
4649 parties, was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
4650 seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
4651
4652 The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily preserved from
4653 the frightful solitude which had threatened her. The insipidity of the
4654 meeting was exactly such as Elinor had expected; it produced not one
4655 novelty of thought or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
4656 than the whole of their discourse both in the dining parlour and
4657 drawing room: to the latter, the children accompanied them, and while
4658 they remained there, she was too well convinced of the impossibility of
4659 engaging Lucy's attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
4660 removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed, and Elinor
4661 began to wonder at herself for having ever entertained a hope of
4662 finding time for conversation at the park. They all rose up in
4663 preparation for a round game.
4664
4665 "I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy, "you are not going to finish
4666 poor little Annamaria's basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt
4667 your eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make the dear
4668 little love some amends for her disappointment to-morrow, and then I
4669 hope she will not much mind it."
4670
4671 This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly and replied,
4672 "Indeed you are very much mistaken, Lady Middleton; I am only waiting
4673 to know whether you can make your party without me, or I should have
4674 been at my filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
4675 for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now, I am
4676 resolved to finish the basket after supper."
4677
4678 "You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--will you ring the
4679 bell for some working candles? My poor little girl would be sadly
4680 disappointed, I know, if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for
4681 though I told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends upon
4682 having it done."
4683
4684 Lucy directly drew her work table near her and reseated herself with an
4685 alacrity and cheerfulness which seemed to infer that she could taste no
4686 greater delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
4687
4688 Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others. No one made
4689 any objection but Marianne, who with her usual inattention to the forms
4690 of general civility, exclaimed, "Your Ladyship will have the goodness
4691 to excuse ME--you know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
4692 I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without farther
4693 ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
4694
4695 Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven that SHE had never made
4696 so rude a speech.
4697
4698 "Marianne can never keep long from that instrument you know, ma'am,"
4699 said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth away the offence; "and I do not
4700 much wonder at it; for it is the very best toned piano-forte I ever
4701 heard."
4702
4703 The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
4704
4705 "Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen to cut out, I may be
4706 of some use to Miss Lucy Steele, in rolling her papers for her; and
4707 there is so much still to be done to the basket, that it must be
4708 impossible I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening. I
4709 should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow me a share in it."
4710
4711 "Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you for your help," cried Lucy,
4712 "for I find there is more to be done to it than I thought there was;
4713 and it would be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after
4714 all."
4715
4716 "Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele-- "Dear little
4717 soul, how I do love her!"
4718
4719 "You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor; "and as you really
4720 like the work, perhaps you will be as well pleased not to cut in till
4721 another rubber, or will you take your chance now?"
4722
4723 Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals, and thus by a
4724 little of that address which Marianne could never condescend to
4725 practise, gained her own end, and pleased Lady Middleton at the same
4726 time. Lucy made room for her with ready attention, and the two fair
4727 rivals were thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
4728 utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work. The pianoforte at
4729 which Marianne, wrapped up in her own music and her own thoughts, had
4730 by this time forgotten that any body was in the room besides herself,
4731 was luckily so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might
4732 safely, under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
4733 subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
4734
4735
4736
4737 CHAPTER 24
4738
4739
4740 In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
4741
4742 "I should be undeserving of the confidence you have honoured me with,
4743 if I felt no desire for its continuance, or no farther curiosity on its
4744 subject. I will not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
4745
4746 "Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking the ice; you have set my
4747 heart at ease by it; for I was somehow or other afraid I had offended
4748 you by what I told you that Monday."
4749
4750 "Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me," and Elinor spoke
4751 it with the truest sincerity, "nothing could be farther from my
4752 intention than to give you such an idea. Could you have a motive for
4753 the trust, that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
4754
4755 "And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little sharp eyes full of
4756 meaning, "there seemed to me to be a coldness and displeasure in your
4757 manner that made me quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was
4758 angry with me; and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for
4759 having took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs. But I am
4760 very glad to find it was only my own fancy, and that you really do not
4761 blame me. If you knew what a consolation it was to me to relieve my
4762 heart speaking to you of what I am always thinking of every moment of
4763 my life, your compassion would make you overlook every thing else I am
4764 sure."
4765
4766 "Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great relief to you,
4767 to acknowledge your situation to me, and be assured that you shall
4768 never have reason to repent it. Your case is a very unfortunate one;
4769 you seem to me to be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have
4770 need of all your mutual affection to support you under them. Mr.
4771 Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
4772
4773 "He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would be madness to
4774 marry upon that, though for my own part, I could give up every prospect
4775 of more without a sigh. I have been always used to a very small
4776 income, and could struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too
4777 well to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that his
4778 mother might give him if he married to please her. We must wait, it
4779 may be for many years. With almost every other man in the world, it
4780 would be an alarming prospect; but Edward's affection and constancy
4781 nothing can deprive me of I know."
4782
4783 "That conviction must be every thing to you; and he is undoubtedly
4784 supported by the same trust in your's. If the strength of your
4785 reciprocal attachment had failed, as between many people, and under
4786 many circumstances it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
4787 your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
4788
4789 Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful in guarding her countenance
4790 from every expression that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
4791
4792 "Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty well put to the
4793 test, by our long, very long absence since we were first engaged, and
4794 it has stood the trial so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt
4795 it now. I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's alarm
4796 on that account from the first."
4797
4798 Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh at this assertion.
4799
4800 Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too by nature, and from
4801 our different situations in life, from his being so much more in the
4802 world than me, and our continual separation, I was enough inclined for
4803 suspicion, to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
4804 the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met, or any
4805 lowness of spirits that I could not account for, or if he had talked
4806 more of one lady than another, or seemed in any respect less happy at
4807 Longstaple than he used to be. I do not mean to say that I am
4808 particularly observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
4809 I am sure I could not be deceived."
4810
4811 "All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty; but it can impose upon
4812 neither of us."
4813
4814 "But what," said she after a short silence, "are your views? or have
4815 you none but that of waiting for Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a
4816 melancholy and shocking extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to
4817 this, and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense in which
4818 it may involve you, rather than run the risk of her displeasure for a
4819 while by owning the truth?"
4820
4821 "If we could be certain that it would be only for a while! But Mrs.
4822 Ferrars is a very headstrong proud woman, and in her first fit of anger
4823 upon hearing it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert, and
4824 the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away all my inclination
4825 for hasty measures."
4826
4827 "And for your own sake too, or you are carrying your disinterestedness
4828 beyond reason."
4829
4830 Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
4831
4832 "Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
4833
4834 "Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he is very unlike his
4835 brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
4836
4837 "A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had caught those
4838 words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.-- "Oh, they are talking of
4839 their favourite beaux, I dare say."
4840
4841 "No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our favourite beaux
4842 are NOT great coxcombs."
4843
4844 "I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not," said Mrs. Jennings,
4845 laughing heartily; "for he is one of the modestest, prettiest behaved
4846 young men I ever saw; but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little
4847 creature, there is no finding out who SHE likes."
4848
4849 "Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round at them, "I dare
4850 say Lucy's beau is quite as modest and pretty behaved as Miss
4851 Dashwood's."
4852
4853 Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip, and looked
4854 angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took place for some time.
4855 Lucy first put an end to it by saying in a lower tone, though Marianne
4856 was then giving them the powerful protection of a very magnificent
4857 concerto--
4858
4859 "I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has lately come into my
4860 head, for bringing matters to bear; indeed I am bound to let you into
4861 the secret, for you are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen
4862 enough of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every other
4863 profession; now my plan is that he should take orders as soon as he
4864 can, and then through your interest, which I am sure you would be kind
4865 enough to use out of friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard
4866 to me, your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
4867 which I understand is a very good one, and the present incumbent not
4868 likely to live a great while. That would be enough for us to marry
4869 upon, and we might trust to time and chance for the rest."
4870
4871 "I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show any mark of my
4872 esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars; but do you not perceive that my
4873 interest on such an occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is
4874 brother to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough to
4875 her husband."
4876
4877 "But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve of Edward's going into
4878 orders."
4879
4880 "Then I rather suspect that my interest would do very little."
4881
4882 They were again silent for many minutes. At length Lucy exclaimed with
4883 a deep sigh,
4884
4885 "I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end to the business at
4886 once by dissolving the engagement. We seem so beset with difficulties
4887 on every side, that though it would make us miserable for a time, we
4888 should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will not give me your
4889 advice, Miss Dashwood?"
4890
4891 "No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed very agitated
4892 feelings, "on such a subject I certainly will not. You know very well
4893 that my opinion would have no weight with you, unless it were on the
4894 side of your wishes."
4895
4896 "Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great solemnity; "I know
4897 nobody of whose judgment I think so highly as I do of yours; and I do
4898 really believe, that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all
4899 means to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars, it will be
4900 more for the happiness of both of you,' I should resolve upon doing it
4901 immediately."
4902
4903 Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's future wife, and
4904 replied, "This compliment would effectually frighten me from giving any
4905 opinion on the subject had I formed one. It raises my influence much
4906 too high; the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached is too
4907 much for an indifferent person."
4908
4909 "'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy, with some
4910 pique, and laying a particular stress on those words, "that your
4911 judgment might justly have such weight with me. If you could be
4912 supposed to be biased in any respect by your own feelings, your opinion
4913 would not be worth having."
4914
4915 Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this, lest they might
4916 provoke each other to an unsuitable increase of ease and unreserve; and
4917 was even partly determined never to mention the subject again. Another
4918 pause therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech, and
4919 Lucy was still the first to end it.
4920
4921 "Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?" said she with all
4922 her accustomary complacency.
4923
4924 "Certainly not."
4925
4926 "I am sorry for that," returned the other, while her eyes brightened at
4927 the information, "it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you
4928 there! But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure, your
4929 brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
4930
4931 "It will not be in my power to accept their invitation if they do."
4932
4933 "How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon meeting you there.
4934 Anne and me are to go the latter end of January to some relations who
4935 have been wanting us to visit them these several years! But I only go
4936 for the sake of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
4937 London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
4938
4939 Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the conclusion of the first
4940 rubber, and the confidential discourse of the two ladies was therefore
4941 at an end, to which both of them submitted without any reluctance, for
4942 nothing had been said on either side to make them dislike each other
4943 less than they had done before; and Elinor sat down to the card table
4944 with the melancholy persuasion that Edward was not only without
4945 affection for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had not
4946 even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage, which sincere
4947 affection on HER side would have given, for self-interest alone could
4948 induce a woman to keep a man to an engagement, of which she seemed so
4949 thoroughly aware that he was weary.
4950
4951 From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor, and when
4952 entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity of introducing it,
4953 and was particularly careful to inform her confidante, of her happiness
4954 whenever she received a letter from Edward, it was treated by the
4955 former with calmness and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility
4956 would allow; for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
4957 Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
4958
4959 The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was lengthened far beyond
4960 what the first invitation implied. Their favour increased; they could
4961 not be spared; Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite of
4962 their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter, in spite of the
4963 absolute necessity of returning to fulfill them immediately, which was
4964 in full force at the end of every week, they were prevailed on to stay
4965 nearly two months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration of
4966 that festival which requires a more than ordinary share of private
4967 balls and large dinners to proclaim its importance.
4968
4969
4970
4971 CHAPTER 25
4972
4973
4974 Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large portion of
4975 the year at the houses of her children and friends, she was not without
4976 a settled habitation of her own. Since the death of her husband, who
4977 had traded with success in a less elegant part of the town, she had
4978 resided every winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman
4979 Square. Towards this home, she began on the approach of January to
4980 turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly, and very
4981 unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses Dashwood to accompany her.
4982 Elinor, without observing the varying complexion of her sister, and the
4983 animated look which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
4984 a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she believed herself
4985 to be speaking their united inclinations. The reason alleged was their
4986 determined resolution of not leaving their mother at that time of the
4987 year. Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise, and
4988 repeated her invitation immediately.
4989
4990 "Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you very well, and I DO beg
4991 you will favour me with your company, for I've quite set my heart upon
4992 it. Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me, for I shan't
4993 put myself at all out of my way for you. It will only be sending Betty
4994 by the coach, and I hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to
4995 go very well in my chaise; and when we are in town, if you do not like
4996 to go wherever I do, well and good, you may always go with one of my
4997 daughters. I am sure your mother will not object to it; for I have had
4998 such good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she will
4999 think me a very fit person to have the charge of you; and if I don't
5000 get one of you at least well married before I have done with you, it
5001 shall not be my fault. I shall speak a good word for you to all the
5002 young men, you may depend upon it."
5003
5004 "I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne would not object
5005 to such a scheme, if her elder sister would come into it. It is very
5006 hard indeed that she should not have a little pleasure, because Miss
5007 Dashwood does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off for
5008 town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying a word to Miss
5009 Dashwood about it."
5010
5011 "Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be monstrous glad of
5012 Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss Dashwood will go or not, only the
5013 more the merrier say I, and I thought it would be more comfortable for
5014 them to be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
5015 to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back. But one or
5016 the other, if not both of them, I must have. Lord bless me! how do you
5017 think I can live poking by myself, I who have been always used till
5018 this winter to have Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us
5019 strike hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change her
5020 mind by and bye, why so much the better."
5021
5022 "I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne, with warmth:
5023 "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever, and it would give
5024 me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest happiness I am capable of,
5025 to be able to accept it. But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I
5026 feel the justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be made
5027 less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no, nothing should
5028 tempt me to leave her. It should not, must not be a struggle."
5029
5030 Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood could spare
5031 them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now understood her sister, and saw
5032 to what indifference to almost every thing else she was carried by her
5033 eagerness to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
5034 opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her mother's
5035 decision, from whom however she scarcely expected to receive any
5036 support in her endeavour to prevent a visit, which she could not
5037 approve of for Marianne, and which on her own account she had
5038 particular reasons to avoid. Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her
5039 mother would be eager to promote--she could not expect to influence the
5040 latter to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she had
5041 never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she dared not explain
5042 the motive of her own disinclination for going to London. That
5043 Marianne, fastidious as she was, thoroughly acquainted with Mrs.
5044 Jennings' manners, and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook
5045 every inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever must be
5046 most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her pursuit of one object,
5047 was such a proof, so strong, so full, of the importance of that object
5048 to her, as Elinor, in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to
5049 witness.
5050
5051 On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood, persuaded that such
5052 an excursion would be productive of much amusement to both her
5053 daughters, and perceiving through all her affectionate attention to
5054 herself, how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear of
5055 their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on their both
5056 accepting it directly; and then began to foresee, with her usual
5057 cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that would accrue to them all,
5058 from this separation.
5059
5060 "I am delighted with the plan," she cried, "it is exactly what I could
5061 wish. Margaret and I shall be as much benefited by it as yourselves.
5062 When you and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly and
5063 happily together with our books and our music! You will find Margaret
5064 so improved when you come back again! I have a little plan of
5065 alteration for your bedrooms too, which may now be performed without
5066 any inconvenience to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to
5067 town; I would have every young woman of your condition in life
5068 acquainted with the manners and amusements of London. You will be
5069 under the care of a motherly good sort of woman, of whose kindness to
5070 you I can have no doubt. And in all probability you will see your
5071 brother, and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
5072 when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so wholly
5073 estranged from each other."
5074
5075 "Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness," said Elinor, "you
5076 have been obviating every impediment to the present scheme which
5077 occurred to you, there is still one objection which, in my opinion,
5078 cannot be so easily removed."
5079
5080 Marianne's countenance sunk.
5081
5082 "And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent Elinor going to
5083 suggest? What formidable obstacle is she now to bring forward? Do let
5084 me hear a word about the expense of it."
5085
5086 "My objection is this; though I think very well of Mrs. Jennings's
5087 heart, she is not a woman whose society can afford us pleasure, or
5088 whose protection will give us consequence."
5089
5090 "That is very true," replied her mother, "but of her society,
5091 separately from that of other people, you will scarcely have any thing
5092 at all, and you will almost always appear in public with Lady
5093 Middleton."
5094
5095 "If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of Mrs. Jennings," said
5096 Marianne, "at least it need not prevent MY accepting her invitation. I
5097 have no such scruples, and I am sure I could put up with every
5098 unpleasantness of that kind with very little effort."
5099
5100 Elinor could not help smiling at this display of indifference towards
5101 the manners of a person, to whom she had often had difficulty in
5102 persuading Marianne to behave with tolerable politeness; and resolved
5103 within herself, that if her sister persisted in going, she would go
5104 likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne should be left
5105 to the sole guidance of her own judgment, or that Mrs. Jennings should
5106 be abandoned to the mercy of Marianne for all the comfort of her
5107 domestic hours. To this determination she was the more easily
5108 reconciled, by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account, was
5109 not to be in town before February; and that their visit, without any
5110 unreasonable abridgement, might be previously finished.
5111
5112 "I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood; "these objections are
5113 nonsensical. You will have much pleasure in being in London, and
5114 especially in being together; and if Elinor would ever condescend to
5115 anticipate enjoyment, she would foresee it there from a variety of
5116 sources; she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
5117 acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
5118
5119 Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of attempting to weaken her
5120 mother's dependence on the attachment of Edward and herself, that the
5121 shock might be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now on this
5122 attack, though almost hopeless of success, she forced herself to begin
5123 her design by saying, as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars
5124 very much, and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest of
5125 the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference to me, whether I am
5126 ever known to them or not."
5127
5128 Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing. Marianne lifted up her eyes in
5129 astonishment, and Elinor conjectured that she might as well have held
5130 her tongue.
5131
5132 After very little farther discourse, it was finally settled that the
5133 invitation should be fully accepted. Mrs. Jennings received the
5134 information with a great deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness
5135 and care; nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John was
5136 delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety was the dread of
5137 being alone, the acquisition of two, to the number of inhabitants in
5138 London, was something. Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being
5139 delighted, which was putting herself rather out of her way; and as for
5140 the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had never been so happy in
5141 their lives as this intelligence made them.
5142
5143 Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted her wishes with
5144 less reluctance than she had expected to feel. With regard to herself,
5145 it was now a matter of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and
5146 when she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan, and her
5147 sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner, restored to all
5148 her usual animation, and elevated to more than her usual gaiety, she
5149 could not be dissatisfied with the cause, and would hardly allow
5150 herself to distrust the consequence.
5151
5152 Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness, so great was the
5153 perturbation of her spirits and her impatience to be gone. Her
5154 unwillingness to quit her mother was her only restorative to calmness;
5155 and at the moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
5156 Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor was the only one of
5157 the three, who seemed to consider the separation as any thing short of
5158 eternal.
5159
5160 Their departure took place in the first week in January. The
5161 Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss Steeles kept their
5162 station at the park, and were to quit it only with the rest of the
5163 family.
5164
5165
5166
5167 CHAPTER 26
5168
5169
5170 Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings, and
5171 beginning a journey to London under her protection, and as her guest,
5172 without wondering at her own situation, so short had their acquaintance
5173 with that lady been, so wholly unsuited were they in age and
5174 disposition, and so many had been her objections against such a measure
5175 only a few days before! But these objections had all, with that happy
5176 ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother equally shared, been
5177 overcome or overlooked; and Elinor, in spite of every occasional doubt
5178 of Willoughby's constancy, could not witness the rapture of delightful
5179 expectation which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes of
5180 Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect, how cheerless
5181 her own state of mind in the comparison, and how gladly she would
5182 engage in the solicitude of Marianne's situation to have the same
5183 animating object in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a
5184 very short time however must now decide what Willoughby's intentions
5185 were; in all probability he was already in town. Marianne's eagerness
5186 to be gone declared her dependence on finding him there; and Elinor was
5187 resolved not only upon gaining every new light as to his character
5188 which her own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
5189 but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister with such
5190 zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was and what he meant,
5191 before many meetings had taken place. Should the result of her
5192 observations be unfavourable, she was determined at all events to open
5193 the eyes of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions would be
5194 of a different nature--she must then learn to avoid every selfish
5195 comparison, and banish every regret which might lessen her satisfaction
5196 in the happiness of Marianne.
5197
5198 They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's behaviour as they
5199 travelled was a happy specimen of what future complaisance and
5200 companionableness to Mrs. Jennings might be expected to be. She sat in
5201 silence almost all the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely
5202 ever voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque beauty
5203 within their view drew from her an exclamation of delight exclusively
5204 addressed to her sister. To atone for this conduct therefore, Elinor
5205 took immediate possession of the post of civility which she had
5206 assigned herself, behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
5207 talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her whenever she
5208 could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side treated them both with all
5209 possible kindness, was solicitous on every occasion for their ease and
5210 enjoyment, and only disturbed that she could not make them choose their
5211 own dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their preferring
5212 salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets. They reached town by
5213 three o'clock the third day, glad to be released, after such a journey,
5214 from the confinement of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury
5215 of a good fire.
5216
5217 The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up, and the young ladies
5218 were immediately put in possession of a very comfortable apartment. It
5219 had formerly been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung a
5220 landscape in coloured silks of her performance, in proof of her having
5221 spent seven years at a great school in town to some effect.
5222
5223 As dinner was not to be ready in less than two hours from their
5224 arrival, Elinor determined to employ the interval in writing to her
5225 mother, and sat down for that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did
5226 the same. "I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
5227 better defer your letter for a day or two?"
5228
5229 "I am NOT going to write to my mother," replied Marianne, hastily, and
5230 as if wishing to avoid any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it
5231 immediately struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby; and
5232 the conclusion which as instantly followed was, that, however
5233 mysteriously they might wish to conduct the affair, they must be
5234 engaged. This conviction, though not entirely satisfactory, gave her
5235 pleasure, and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
5236 Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes; in length it could be no
5237 more than a note; it was then folded up, sealed, and directed with
5238 eager rapidity. Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in the
5239 direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne, ringing the
5240 bell, requested the footman who answered it to get that letter conveyed
5241 for her to the two-penny post. This decided the matter at once.
5242
5243 Her spirits still continued very high; but there was a flutter in them
5244 which prevented their giving much pleasure to her sister, and this
5245 agitation increased as the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any
5246 dinner, and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room, seemed
5247 anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
5248
5249 It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings, by being much
5250 engaged in her own room, could see little of what was passing. The tea
5251 things were brought in, and already had Marianne been disappointed more
5252 than once by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
5253 heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house, Elinor
5254 felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach, and Marianne,
5255 starting up, moved towards the door. Every thing was silent; this
5256 could not be borne many seconds; she opened the door, advanced a few
5257 steps towards the stairs, and after listening half a minute, returned
5258 into the room in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
5259 him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her feelings at that
5260 instant she could not help exclaiming, "Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby,
5261 indeed it is!" and seemed almost ready to throw herself into his arms,
5262 when Colonel Brandon appeared.
5263
5264 It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness, and she immediately
5265 left the room. Elinor was disappointed too; but at the same time her
5266 regard for Colonel Brandon ensured his welcome with her; and she felt
5267 particularly hurt that a man so partial to her sister should perceive
5268 that she experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing
5269 him. She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him, that he even
5270 observed Marianne as she quitted the room, with such astonishment and
5271 concern, as hardly left him the recollection of what civility demanded
5272 towards herself.
5273
5274 "Is your sister ill?" said he.
5275
5276 Elinor answered in some distress that she was, and then talked of
5277 head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues; and of every thing to which
5278 she could decently attribute her sister's behaviour.
5279
5280 He heard her with the most earnest attention, but seeming to recollect
5281 himself, said no more on the subject, and began directly to speak of
5282 his pleasure at seeing them in London, making the usual inquiries about
5283 their journey, and the friends they had left behind.
5284
5285 In this calm kind of way, with very little interest on either side,
5286 they continued to talk, both of them out of spirits, and the thoughts
5287 of both engaged elsewhere. Elinor wished very much to ask whether
5288 Willoughby were then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain by
5289 any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way of saying something,
5290 she asked if he had been in London ever since she had seen him last.
5291 "Yes," he replied, with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have
5292 been once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never been in
5293 my power to return to Barton."
5294
5295 This, and the manner in which it was said, immediately brought back to
5296 her remembrance all the circumstances of his quitting that place, with
5297 the uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings, and she
5298 was fearful that her question had implied much more curiosity on the
5299 subject than she had ever felt.
5300
5301 Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she, with her usual
5302 noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad to see you--sorry I could not
5303 come before--beg your pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a
5304 little, and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I have been
5305 at home, and you know one has always a world of little odd things to do
5306 after one has been away for any time; and then I have had Cartwright to
5307 settle with-- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
5308 But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should be in town
5309 today?"
5310
5311 "I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's, where I have been
5312 dining."
5313
5314 "Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their house? How does
5315 Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine size by this time."
5316
5317 "Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned to tell you,
5318 that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
5319
5320 "Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel, I have brought two
5321 young ladies with me, you see--that is, you see but one of them now,
5322 but there is another somewhere. Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which
5323 you will not be sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr.
5324 Willoughby will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing to be
5325 young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I never was very
5326 handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got a very good husband, and I
5327 don't know what the greatest beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has
5328 been dead these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have you
5329 been to since we parted? And how does your business go on? Come,
5330 come, let's have no secrets among friends."
5331
5332 He replied with his accustomary mildness to all her inquiries, but
5333 without satisfying her in any. Elinor now began to make the tea, and
5334 Marianne was obliged to appear again.
5335
5336 After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became more thoughtful and silent
5337 than he had been before, and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to
5338 stay long. No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies were
5339 unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
5340
5341 Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits and happy looks.
5342 The disappointment of the evening before seemed forgotten in the
5343 expectation of what was to happen that day. They had not long finished
5344 their breakfast before Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and
5345 in a few minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted to see
5346 them all, that it was hard to say whether she received most pleasure
5347 from meeting her mother or the Miss Dashwoods again. So surprised at
5348 their coming to town, though it was what she had rather expected all
5349 along; so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation after having
5350 declined her own, though at the same time she would never have forgiven
5351 them if they had not come!
5352
5353 "Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you," said she; "What do you think
5354 he said when he heard of your coming with Mama? I forget what it was
5355 now, but it was something so droll!"
5356
5357 After an hour or two spent in what her mother called comfortable chat,
5358 or in other words, in every variety of inquiry concerning all their
5359 acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side, and in laughter without cause on
5360 Mrs. Palmer's, it was proposed by the latter that they should all
5361 accompany her to some shops where she had business that morning, to
5362 which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented, as having likewise
5363 some purchases to make themselves; and Marianne, though declining it at
5364 first was induced to go likewise.
5365
5366 Wherever they went, she was evidently always on the watch. In Bond
5367 Street especially, where much of their business lay, her eyes were in
5368 constant inquiry; and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind
5369 was equally abstracted from every thing actually before them, from all
5370 that interested and occupied the others. Restless and dissatisfied
5371 every where, her sister could never obtain her opinion of any article
5372 of purchase, however it might equally concern them both: she received
5373 no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at home again, and
5374 could with difficulty govern her vexation at the tediousness of Mrs.
5375 Palmer, whose eye was caught by every thing pretty, expensive, or new;
5376 who was wild to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
5377 time in rapture and indecision.
5378
5379 It was late in the morning before they returned home; and no sooner had
5380 they entered the house than Marianne flew eagerly up stairs, and when
5381 Elinor followed, she found her turning from the table with a sorrowful
5382 countenance, which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
5383
5384 "Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?" said she to
5385 the footman who then entered with the parcels. She was answered in the
5386 negative. "Are you quite sure of it?" she replied. "Are you certain
5387 that no servant, no porter has left any letter or note?"
5388
5389 The man replied that none had.
5390
5391 "How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed voice, as she
5392 turned away to the window.
5393
5394 "How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself, regarding her sister
5395 with uneasiness. "If she had not known him to be in town she would not
5396 have written to him, as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
5397 and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither come nor write!
5398 Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong in permitting an engagement
5399 between a daughter so young, a man so little known, to be carried on in
5400 so doubtful, so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will
5401 MY interference be borne."
5402
5403 She determined, after some consideration, that if appearances continued
5404 many days longer as unpleasant as they now were, she would represent in
5405 the strongest manner to her mother the necessity of some serious
5406 enquiry into the affair.
5407
5408 Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's intimate
5409 acquaintance, whom she had met and invited in the morning, dined with
5410 them. The former left them soon after tea to fulfill her evening
5411 engagements; and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
5412 for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions, as she
5413 would never learn the game; but though her time was therefore at her
5414 own disposal, the evening was by no means more productive of pleasure
5415 to her than to Elinor, for it was spent in all the anxiety of
5416 expectation and the pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured
5417 for a few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside, and she
5418 returned to the more interesting employment of walking backwards and
5419 forwards across the room, pausing for a moment whenever she came to the
5420 window, in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
5421
5422
5423
5424 CHAPTER 27
5425
5426
5427 "If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings, when they
5428 met at breakfast the following morning, "Sir John will not like leaving
5429 Barton next week; 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's
5430 pleasure. Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem to
5431 take it so much to heart."
5432
5433 "That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice, and walking to the
5434 window as she spoke, to examine the day. "I had not thought of that.
5435 This weather will keep many sportsmen in the country."
5436
5437 It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were restored by it.
5438 "It is charming weather for THEM indeed," she continued, as she sat
5439 down to the breakfast table with a happy countenance. "How much they
5440 must enjoy it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot be
5441 expected to last long. At this time of the year, and after such a
5442 series of rain, we shall certainly have very little more of it. Frosts
5443 will soon set in, and in all probability with severity. In another day
5444 or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last longer--nay,
5445 perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
5446
5447 "At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent Mrs. Jennings from
5448 seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly as she did, "I dare say we
5449 shall have Sir John and Lady Middleton in town by the end of next week."
5450
5451 "Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always has her own way."
5452
5453 "And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will write to Combe by
5454 this day's post."
5455
5456 But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away with a privacy
5457 which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain the fact. Whatever the
5458 truth of it might be, and far as Elinor was from feeling thorough
5459 contentment about it, yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could
5460 not be very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits; happy
5461 in the mildness of the weather, and still happier in her expectation of
5462 a frost.
5463
5464 The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at the houses of Mrs.
5465 Jennings's acquaintance to inform them of her being in town; and
5466 Marianne was all the time busy in observing the direction of the wind,
5467 watching the variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the
5468 air.
5469
5470 "Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning, Elinor? There
5471 seems to me a very decided difference. I can hardly keep my hands warm
5472 even in my muff. It was not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem
5473 parting too, the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a clear
5474 afternoon."
5475
5476 Elinor was alternately diverted and pained; but Marianne persevered,
5477 and saw every night in the brightness of the fire, and every morning in
5478 the appearance of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching
5479 frost.
5480
5481 The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be dissatisfied with Mrs.
5482 Jennings's style of living, and set of acquaintance, than with her
5483 behaviour to themselves, which was invariably kind. Every thing in her
5484 household arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan, and
5485 excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady Middleton's regret, she
5486 had never dropped, she visited no one to whom an introduction could at
5487 all discompose the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
5488 herself more comfortably situated in that particular than she had
5489 expected, Elinor was very willing to compound for the want of much real
5490 enjoyment from any of their evening parties, which, whether at home or
5491 abroad, formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
5492
5493 Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation to the house, was with
5494 them almost every day; he came to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor,
5495 who often derived more satisfaction from conversing with him than from
5496 any other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time with much
5497 concern his continued regard for her sister. She feared it was a
5498 strengthening regard. It grieved her to see the earnestness with which
5499 he often watched Marianne, and his spirits were certainly worse than
5500 when at Barton.
5501
5502 About a week after their arrival, it became certain that Willoughby was
5503 also arrived. His card was on the table when they came in from the
5504 morning's drive.
5505
5506 "Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while we were out."
5507 Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his being in London, now ventured to
5508 say, "Depend upon it, he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne
5509 seemed hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jennings's entrance, escaped with
5510 the precious card.
5511
5512 This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor, restored to those of
5513 her sister all, and more than all, their former agitation. From this
5514 moment her mind was never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every
5515 hour of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted on being
5516 left behind, the next morning, when the others went out.
5517
5518 Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing in Berkeley Street
5519 during their absence; but a moment's glance at her sister when they
5520 returned was enough to inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second
5521 visit there. A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table.
5522
5523 "For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
5524
5525 "No, ma'am, for my mistress."
5526
5527 But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
5528
5529 "It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
5530
5531 "You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor, unable to be longer
5532 silent.
5533
5534 "Yes, a little--not much."
5535
5536 After a short pause. "You have no confidence in me, Marianne."
5537
5538 "Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have confidence in no
5539 one!"
5540
5541 "Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed, Marianne, I have
5542 nothing to tell."
5543
5544 "Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations then are alike.
5545 We have neither of us any thing to tell; you, because you do not
5546 communicate, and I, because I conceal nothing."
5547
5548 Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself, which she was
5549 not at liberty to do away, knew not how, under such circumstances, to
5550 press for greater openness in Marianne.
5551
5552 Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being given her, she read it
5553 aloud. It was from Lady Middleton, announcing their arrival in Conduit
5554 Street the night before, and requesting the company of her mother and
5555 cousins the following evening. Business on Sir John's part, and a
5556 violent cold on her own, prevented their calling in Berkeley Street.
5557 The invitation was accepted; but when the hour of appointment drew
5558 near, necessary as it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that
5559 they should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some difficulty
5560 in persuading her sister to go, for still she had seen nothing of
5561 Willoughby; and therefore was not more indisposed for amusement abroad,
5562 than unwilling to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
5563
5564 Elinor found, when the evening was over, that disposition is not
5565 materially altered by a change of abode, for although scarcely settled
5566 in town, Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
5567 young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was an affair,
5568 however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve. In the country, an
5569 unpremeditated dance was very allowable; but in London, where the
5570 reputation of elegance was more important and less easily attained, it
5571 was risking too much for the gratification of a few girls, to have it
5572 known that Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine
5573 couple, with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
5574
5575 Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former, whom they had
5576 not seen before since their arrival in town, as he was careful to avoid
5577 the appearance of any attention to his mother-in-law, and therefore
5578 never came near her, they received no mark of recognition on their
5579 entrance. He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know who they
5580 were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from the other side of the
5581 room. Marianne gave one glance round the apartment as she entered: it
5582 was enough--HE was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed to
5583 receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been assembled about
5584 an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards the Miss Dashwoods to express his
5585 surprise on seeing them in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first
5586 informed of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
5587 something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
5588
5589 "I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
5590
5591 "Did you?" replied Elinor.
5592
5593 "When do you go back again?"
5594
5595 "I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
5596
5597 Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance in her life, as she was
5598 that evening, and never so much fatigued by the exercise. She
5599 complained of it as they returned to Berkeley Street.
5600
5601 "Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason of all that very
5602 well; if a certain person who shall be nameless, had been there, you
5603 would not have been a bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very
5604 pretty of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
5605
5606 "Invited!" cried Marianne.
5607
5608 "So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir John met him
5609 somewhere in the street this morning." Marianne said no more, but
5610 looked exceedingly hurt. Impatient in this situation to be doing
5611 something that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved to
5612 write the next morning to her mother, and hoped by awakening her fears
5613 for the health of Marianne, to procure those inquiries which had been
5614 so long delayed; and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure by
5615 perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne was again
5616 writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose it to be to any other
5617 person.
5618
5619 About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by herself on
5620 business, and Elinor began her letter directly, while Marianne, too
5621 restless for employment, too anxious for conversation, walked from one
5622 window to the other, or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
5623 Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother, relating all
5624 that had passed, her suspicions of Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her
5625 by every plea of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
5626 of her real situation with respect to him.
5627
5628 Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap foretold a visitor, and
5629 Colonel Brandon was announced. Marianne, who had seen him from the
5630 window, and who hated company of any kind, left the room before he
5631 entered it. He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
5632 satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he had somewhat in
5633 particular to tell her, sat for some time without saying a word.
5634 Elinor, persuaded that he had some communication to make in which her
5635 sister was concerned, impatiently expected its opening. It was not the
5636 first time of her feeling the same kind of conviction; for, more than
5637 once before, beginning with the observation of "your sister looks
5638 unwell to-day," or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
5639 on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring, something
5640 particular about her. After a pause of several minutes, their silence
5641 was broken, by his asking her in a voice of some agitation, when he was
5642 to congratulate her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
5643 prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready, was obliged
5644 to adopt the simple and common expedient, of asking what he meant? He
5645 tried to smile as he replied, "your sister's engagement to Mr.
5646 Willoughby is very generally known."
5647
5648 "It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor, "for her own family do
5649 not know it."
5650
5651 He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon, I am afraid my
5652 inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not supposed any secrecy
5653 intended, as they openly correspond, and their marriage is universally
5654 talked of."
5655
5656 "How can that be? By whom can you have heard it mentioned?"
5657
5658 "By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others with whom you are
5659 most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer, and the Middletons. But
5660 still I might not have believed it, for where the mind is perhaps
5661 rather unwilling to be convinced, it will always find something to
5662 support its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
5663 accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to Mr. Willoughby in
5664 your sister's writing. I came to inquire, but I was convinced before I
5665 could ask the question. Is every thing finally settled? Is it
5666 impossible to-? But I have no right, and I could have no chance of
5667 succeeding. Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong in
5668 saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on your prudence I
5669 have the strongest dependence. Tell me that it is all absolutely
5670 resolved on, that any attempt, that in short concealment, if
5671 concealment be possible, is all that remains."
5672
5673 These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal of his love for
5674 her sister, affected her very much. She was not immediately able to
5675 say anything, and even when her spirits were recovered, she debated for
5676 a short time, on the answer it would be most proper to give. The real
5677 state of things between Willoughby and her sister was so little known
5678 to herself, that in endeavouring to explain it, she might be as liable
5679 to say too much as too little. Yet as she was convinced that
5680 Marianne's affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
5681 Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection might be, and
5682 at the same time wished to shield her conduct from censure, she thought
5683 it most prudent and kind, after some consideration, to say more than
5684 she really knew or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
5685 she had never been informed by themselves of the terms on which they
5686 stood with each other, of their mutual affection she had no doubt, and
5687 of their correspondence she was not astonished to hear.
5688
5689 He listened to her with silent attention, and on her ceasing to speak,
5690 rose directly from his seat, and after saying in a voice of emotion,
5691 "to your sister I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
5692 may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
5693
5694 Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this conversation, to
5695 lessen the uneasiness of her mind on other points; she was left, on the
5696 contrary, with a melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's
5697 unhappiness, and was prevented even from wishing it removed, by her
5698 anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
5699
5700
5701
5702 CHAPTER 28
5703
5704
5705 Nothing occurred during the next three or four days, to make Elinor
5706 regret what she had done, in applying to her mother; for Willoughby
5707 neither came nor wrote. They were engaged about the end of that time
5708 to attend Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was kept
5709 away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter; and for this party,
5710 Marianne, wholly dispirited, careless of her appearance, and seeming
5711 equally indifferent whether she went or staid, prepared, without one
5712 look of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
5713 drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady Middleton's
5714 arrival, without once stirring from her seat, or altering her attitude,
5715 lost in her own thoughts, and insensible of her sister's presence; and
5716 when at last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them at the
5717 door, she started as if she had forgotten that any one was expected.
5718
5719 They arrived in due time at the place of destination, and as soon as
5720 the string of carriages before them would allow, alighted, ascended the
5721 stairs, heard their names announced from one landing-place to another
5722 in an audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up, quite full
5723 of company, and insufferably hot. When they had paid their tribute of
5724 politeness by curtsying to the lady of the house, they were permitted
5725 to mingle in the crowd, and take their share of the heat and
5726 inconvenience, to which their arrival must necessarily add. After some
5727 time spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat down to
5728 Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for moving about, she and
5729 Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs, placed themselves at no great
5730 distance from the table.
5731
5732 They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor perceived
5733 Willoughby, standing within a few yards of them, in earnest
5734 conversation with a very fashionable looking young woman. She soon
5735 caught his eye, and he immediately bowed, but without attempting to
5736 speak to her, or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
5737 and then continued his discourse with the same lady. Elinor turned
5738 involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether it could be unobserved by
5739 her. At that moment she first perceived him, and her whole countenance
5740 glowing with sudden delight, she would have moved towards him
5741 instantly, had not her sister caught hold of her.
5742
5743 "Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he is there--Oh! why does
5744 he not look at me? why cannot I speak to him?"
5745
5746 "Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do not betray what you
5747 feel to every body present. Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
5748
5749 This however was more than she could believe herself; and to be
5750 composed at such a moment was not only beyond the reach of Marianne, it
5751 was beyond her wish. She sat in an agony of impatience which affected
5752 every feature.
5753
5754 At last he turned round again, and regarded them both; she started up,
5755 and pronouncing his name in a tone of affection, held out her hand to
5756 him. He approached, and addressing himself rather to Elinor than
5757 Marianne, as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to observe
5758 her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after Mrs. Dashwood, and
5759 asked how long they had been in town. Elinor was robbed of all
5760 presence of mind by such an address, and was unable to say a word. But
5761 the feelings of her sister were instantly expressed. Her face was
5762 crimsoned over, and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
5763 "Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this? Have you not
5764 received my letters? Will you not shake hands with me?"
5765
5766 He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed painful to him, and he
5767 held her hand only for a moment. During all this time he was evidently
5768 struggling for composure. Elinor watched his countenance and saw its
5769 expression becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
5770 with calmness.
5771
5772 "I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley Street last Tuesday,
5773 and very much regretted that I was not fortunate enough to find
5774 yourselves and Mrs. Jennings at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
5775
5776 "But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne in the wildest
5777 anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am sure--some dreadful mistake. What
5778 can be the meaning of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell
5779 me, what is the matter?"
5780
5781 He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his embarrassment
5782 returned; but as if, on catching the eye of the young lady with whom he
5783 had been previously talking, he felt the necessity of instant exertion,
5784 he recovered himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
5785 of receiving the information of your arrival in town, which you were so
5786 good as to send me," turned hastily away with a slight bow and joined
5787 his friend.
5788
5789 Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable to stand, sunk into
5790 her chair, and Elinor, expecting every moment to see her faint, tried
5791 to screen her from the observation of others, while reviving her with
5792 lavender water.
5793
5794 "Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she could speak, "and force
5795 him to come to me. Tell him I must see him again--must speak to him
5796 instantly.-- I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
5797 is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.-- Oh go to him
5798 this moment."
5799
5800 "How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne, you must wait. This is
5801 not the place for explanations. Wait only till tomorrow."
5802
5803 With difficulty however could she prevent her from following him
5804 herself; and to persuade her to check her agitation, to wait, at least,
5805 with the appearance of composure, till she might speak to him with more
5806 privacy and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
5807 incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery of her feelings,
5808 by exclamations of wretchedness. In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby
5809 quit the room by the door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne
5810 that he was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again that
5811 evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm. She instantly begged
5812 her sister would entreat Lady Middleton to take them home, as she was
5813 too miserable to stay a minute longer.
5814
5815 Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber, on being informed
5816 that Marianne was unwell, was too polite to object for a moment to her
5817 wish of going away, and making over her cards to a friend, they
5818 departed as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word was
5819 spoken during their return to Berkeley Street. Marianne was in a
5820 silent agony, too much oppressed even for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings
5821 was luckily not come home, they could go directly to their own room,
5822 where hartshorn restored her a little to herself. She was soon
5823 undressed and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone, her
5824 sister then left her, and while she waited the return of Mrs. Jennings,
5825 had leisure enough for thinking over the past.
5826
5827 That some kind of engagement had subsisted between Willoughby and
5828 Marianne she could not doubt, and that Willoughby was weary of it,
5829 seemed equally clear; for however Marianne might still feed her own
5830 wishes, SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake or
5831 misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough change of
5832 sentiment could account for it. Her indignation would have been still
5833 stronger than it was, had she not witnessed that embarrassment which
5834 seemed to speak a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
5835 her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been sporting with
5836 the affections of her sister from the first, without any design that
5837 would bear investigation. Absence might have weakened his regard, and
5838 convenience might have determined him to overcome it, but that such a
5839 regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself to doubt.
5840
5841 As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting must already
5842 have given her, and on those still more severe which might await her in
5843 its probable consequence, she could not reflect without the deepest
5844 concern. Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
5845 could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be divided in
5846 future, her mind might be always supported. But every circumstance
5847 that could embitter such an evil seemed uniting to heighten the misery
5848 of Marianne in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate and
5849 irreconcilable rupture with him.
5850
5851
5852
5853 CHAPTER 29
5854
5855
5856 Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day, or the sun
5857 gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning in January, Marianne, only
5858 half dressed, was kneeling against one of the window-seats for the sake
5859 of all the little light she could command from it, and writing as fast
5860 as a continual flow of tears would permit her. In this situation,
5861 Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation and sobs, first perceived
5862 her; and after observing her for a few moments with silent anxiety,
5863 said, in a tone of the most considerate gentleness,
5864
5865 "Marianne, may I ask-?"
5866
5867 "No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will soon know all."
5868
5869 The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said, lasted no
5870 longer than while she spoke, and was immediately followed by a return
5871 of the same excessive affliction. It was some minutes before she could
5872 go on with her letter, and the frequent bursts of grief which still
5873 obliged her, at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of
5874 her feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing for the
5875 last time to Willoughby.
5876
5877 Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention in her power; and
5878 she would have tried to sooth and tranquilize her still more, had not
5879 Marianne entreated her, with all the eagerness of the most nervous
5880 irritability, not to speak to her for the world. In such
5881 circumstances, it was better for both that they should not be long
5882 together; and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
5883 her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed, but
5884 requiring at once solitude and continual change of place, made her
5885 wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding the sight of every
5886 body.
5887
5888 At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat any thing; and
5889 Elinor's attention was then all employed, not in urging her, not in
5890 pitying her, nor in appearing to regard her, but in endeavouring to
5891 engage Mrs. Jennings's notice entirely to herself.
5892
5893 As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings, it lasted a
5894 considerable time, and they were just setting themselves, after it,
5895 round the common working table, when a letter was delivered to
5896 Marianne, which she eagerly caught from the servant, and, turning of a
5897 death-like paleness, instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as
5898 plainly by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must come
5899 from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness at heart as made her
5900 hardly able to hold up her head, and sat in such a general tremour as
5901 made her fear it impossible to escape Mrs. Jennings's notice. That good
5902 lady, however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter from
5903 Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke, and which she
5904 treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh, that she would find it to
5905 her liking. Of Elinor's distress, she was too busily employed in
5906 measuring lengths of worsted for her rug, to see any thing at all; and
5907 calmly continuing her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
5908
5909 "Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so desperately in love in my
5910 life! MY girls were nothing to her, and yet they used to be foolish
5911 enough; but as for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature. I
5912 hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her waiting much
5913 longer, for it is quite grievous to see her look so ill and forlorn.
5914 Pray, when are they to be married?"
5915
5916 Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at that moment,
5917 obliged herself to answer such an attack as this, and, therefore,
5918 trying to smile, replied, "And have you really, Ma'am, talked yourself
5919 into a persuasion of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I
5920 thought it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems to
5921 imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not deceive
5922 yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing would surprise me
5923 more than to hear of their being going to be married."
5924
5925 "For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you talk so? Don't we
5926 all know that it must be a match, that they were over head and ears in
5927 love with each other from the first moment they met? Did not I see
5928 them together in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
5929 know that your sister came to town with me on purpose to buy wedding
5930 clothes? Come, come, this won't do. Because you are so sly about it
5931 yourself, you think nobody else has any senses; but it is no such
5932 thing, I can tell you, for it has been known all over town this ever so
5933 long. I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
5934
5935 "Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously, "you are mistaken.
5936 Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing in spreading the report, and
5937 you will find that you have though you will not believe me now."
5938
5939 Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not spirits to say more,
5940 and eager at all events to know what Willoughby had written, hurried
5941 away to their room, where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne
5942 stretched on the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
5943 and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near, but without
5944 saying a word; and seating herself on the bed, took her hand, kissed
5945 her affectionately several times, and then gave way to a burst of
5946 tears, which at first was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The
5947 latter, though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness of
5948 this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in joint affliction, she
5949 put all the letters into Elinor's hands; and then covering her face
5950 with her handkerchief, almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew
5951 that such grief, shocking as it was to witness it, must have its
5952 course, watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat spent
5953 itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter, read as
5954 follows:
5955
5956 "Bond Street, January.
5957 "MY DEAR MADAM,
5958
5959 "I have just had the honour of receiving your
5960 letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
5961 acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
5962 was anything in my behaviour last night that did
5963 not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
5964 a loss to discover in what point I could be so
5965 unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
5966 forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
5967 perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
5968 my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
5969 without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
5970 myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
5971 misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
5972 whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
5973 unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
5974 I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
5975 for not having been more guarded in my professions
5976 of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
5977 you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
5978 that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
5979 and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
5980 this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
5981 regret that I obey your commands in returning the
5982 letters with which I have been honoured from you,
5983 and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
5984 on me.
5985
5986 "I am, dear Madam,
5987 "Your most obedient
5988 "humble servant,
5989 "JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
5990
5991
5992 With what indignation such a letter as this must be read by Miss
5993 Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware, before she began it, that it
5994 must bring a confession of his inconstancy, and confirm their
5995 separation for ever, she was not aware that such language could be
5996 suffered to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby capable
5997 of departing so far from the appearance of every honourable and
5998 delicate feeling--so far from the common decorum of a gentleman, as to
5999 send a letter so impudently cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing
6000 with his desire of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
6001 breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--a letter of
6002 which every line was an insult, and which proclaimed its writer to be
6003 deep in hardened villainy.
6004
6005 She paused over it for some time with indignant astonishment; then read
6006 it again and again; but every perusal only served to increase her
6007 abhorrence of the man, and so bitter were her feelings against him,
6008 that she dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
6009 Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement, not as a loss to
6010 her of any possible good but as an escape from the worst and most
6011 irremediable of all evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled
6012 man, as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
6013
6014 In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter, on the
6015 depravity of that mind which could dictate it, and probably, on the
6016 very different mind of a very different person, who had no other
6017 connection whatever with the affair than what her heart gave him with
6018 every thing that passed, Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her
6019 sister, forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread, and so
6020 entirely forgot how long she had been in the room, that when on hearing
6021 a carriage drive up to the door, she went to the window to see who
6022 could be coming so unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to
6023 perceive Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been ordered
6024 till one. Determined not to quit Marianne, though hopeless of
6025 contributing, at present, to her ease, she hurried away to excuse
6026 herself from attending Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being
6027 indisposed. Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern for
6028 its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor, after seeing
6029 her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she found attempting to rise
6030 from the bed, and whom she reached just in time to prevent her from
6031 falling on the floor, faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest
6032 and food; for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
6033 nights since she had really slept; and now, when her mind was no longer
6034 supported by the fever of suspense, the consequence of all this was
6035 felt in an aching head, a weakened stomach, and a general nervous
6036 faintness. A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
6037 made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express some
6038 sense of her kindness, by saying,
6039
6040 "Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
6041
6042 "I only wish," replied her sister, "there were any thing I COULD do,
6043 which might be of comfort to you."
6044
6045 This, as every thing else would have been, was too much for Marianne,
6046 who could only exclaim, in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am
6047 miserable, indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
6048
6049 Elinor could no longer witness this torrent of unresisted grief in
6050 silence.
6051
6052 "Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried, "if you would not kill
6053 yourself and all who love you. Think of your mother; think of her
6054 misery while YOU suffer: for her sake you must exert yourself."
6055
6056 "I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me, leave me, if I
6057 distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me! but do not torture me so.
6058 Oh! how easy for those, who have no sorrow of their own to talk of
6059 exertion! Happy, happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I
6060 suffer."
6061
6062 "Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And can you believe
6063 me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
6064
6065 "Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round her sister's neck; "I
6066 know you feel for me; I know what a heart you have; but yet you
6067 are--you must be happy; Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away
6068 such happiness as that?"
6069
6070 "Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
6071
6072 "No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you, and only you. You
6073 CAN have no grief."
6074
6075 "I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
6076
6077 "And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is a misery which nothing
6078 can do away."
6079
6080 "You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no comforts? no friends? Is
6081 your loss such as leaves no opening for consolation? Much as you
6082 suffer now, think of what you would have suffered if the discovery of
6083 his character had been delayed to a later period--if your engagement
6084 had been carried on for months and months, as it might have been,
6085 before he chose to put an end to it. Every additional day of unhappy
6086 confidence, on your side, would have made the blow more dreadful."
6087
6088 "Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been no engagement."
6089
6090 "No engagement!"
6091
6092 "No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him. He has broken no faith
6093 with me."
6094
6095 "But he told you that he loved you."
6096
6097 "Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied, but never
6098 professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it had been--but it never
6099 was."
6100
6101 "Yet you wrote to him?"--
6102
6103 "Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?-- But I cannot
6104 talk."
6105
6106 Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three letters which now
6107 raised a much stronger curiosity than before, directly ran over the
6108 contents of all. The first, which was what her sister had sent him on
6109 their arrival in town, was to this effect.
6110
6111 Berkeley Street, January.
6112
6113 "How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
6114 receiving this; and I think you will feel something
6115 more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
6116 An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
6117 Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
6118 I wish you may receive this in time to come here
6119 to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
6120 I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
6121
6122 "M.D."
6123
6124 Her second note, which had been written on the morning after the dance
6125 at the Middletons', was in these words:--
6126
6127 "I cannot express my disappointment in having
6128 missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
6129 at not having received any answer to a note which
6130 I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
6131 to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
6132 hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
6133 and explain the reason of my having expected this
6134 in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
6135 because we are generally out by one. We were last
6136 night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
6137 I have been told that you were asked to be of the
6138 party. But could it be so? You must be very much
6139 altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
6140 the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
6141 this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
6142 personal assurance of its being otherwise.
6143
6144 "M.D."
6145
6146 The contents of her last note to him were these:--
6147
6148 "What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
6149 behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
6150 of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
6151 which our separation naturally produced, with the
6152 familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
6153 to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
6154 passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
6155 a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
6156 insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
6157 form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
6158 I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
6159 it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
6160 deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
6161 lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
6162 explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
6163 be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
6164 would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
6165 of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
6166 you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
6167 your regard for us all was insincere, that your
6168 behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
6169 it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
6170 present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
6171 to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
6172 ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
6173 no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
6174 and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
6175
6176 "M.D."
6177
6178 That such letters, so full of affection and confidence, could have been
6179 so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake, would have been unwilling
6180 to believe. But her condemnation of him did not blind her to the
6181 impropriety of their having been written at all; and she was silently
6182 grieving over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited proofs
6183 of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding, and most severely
6184 condemned by the event, when Marianne, perceiving that she had finished
6185 the letters, observed to her that they contained nothing but what any
6186 one would have written in the same situation.
6187
6188 "I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly engaged to him, as if
6189 the strictest legal covenant had bound us to each other."
6190
6191 "I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately he did not feel the
6192 same."
6193
6194 "He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he felt it. I know
6195 he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and nothing but the
6196 blackest art employed against me can have done it), I was once as dear
6197 to him as my own soul could wish. This lock of hair, which now he can
6198 so readily give up, was begged of me with the most earnest
6199 supplication. Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his
6200 voice at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our being
6201 together at Barton? The morning that we parted too! When he told me
6202 that it might be many weeks before we met again--his distress--can I
6203 ever forget his distress?"
6204
6205 For a moment or two she could say no more; but when this emotion had
6206 passed away, she added, in a firmer tone,
6207
6208 "Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
6209
6210 "Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he have been
6211 instigated?"
6212
6213 "By all the world, rather than by his own heart. I could rather
6214 believe every creature of my acquaintance leagued together to ruin me
6215 in his opinion, than believe his nature capable of such cruelty. This
6216 woman of whom he writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your
6217 own dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous to bely me.
6218 Beyond you three, is there a creature in the world whom I would not
6219 rather suspect of evil than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
6220
6221 Elinor would not contend, and only replied, "Whoever may have been so
6222 detestably your enemy, let them be cheated of their malignant triumph,
6223 my dear sister, by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
6224 innocence and good intentions supports your spirits. It is a
6225 reasonable and laudable pride which resists such malevolence."
6226
6227 "No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has no pride. I care
6228 not who knows that I am wretched. The triumph of seeing me so may be
6229 open to all the world. Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be
6230 proud and independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
6231 mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be wretched--and they
6232 are welcome to enjoy the consciousness of it that can."
6233
6234 "But for my mother's sake and mine--"
6235
6236 "I would do more than for my own. But to appear happy when I am so
6237 miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
6238
6239 Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed in walking
6240 thoughtfully from the fire to the window, from the window to the fire,
6241 without knowing that she received warmth from one, or discerning
6242 objects through the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
6243 with her head leaning against one of its posts, again took up
6244 Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering over every sentence,
6245 exclaimed--
6246
6247 "It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this be yours!
6248 Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor, nothing can. Whatever
6249 he might have heard against me--ought he not to have suspended his
6250 belief? ought he not to have told me of it, to have given me the power
6251 of clearing myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
6252 which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
6253 Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words? Oh,
6254 barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
6255
6256 "No, Marianne, in no possible way."
6257
6258 "And yet this woman--who knows what her art may have been?--how long it
6259 may have been premeditated, and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is
6260 she?--Who can she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
6261 attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one, no one--he
6262 talked to me only of myself."
6263
6264 Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated, and it ended thus.
6265
6266 "Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama. Can not we be
6267 gone to-morrow?"
6268
6269 "To-morrow, Marianne!"
6270
6271 "Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for Willoughby's sake--and
6272 now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
6273
6274 "It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe Mrs. Jennings much more
6275 than civility; and civility of the commonest kind must prevent such a
6276 hasty removal as that."
6277
6278 "Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot stay here long, I
6279 cannot stay to endure the questions and remarks of all these people.
6280 The Middletons and Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of
6281 such a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
6282
6283 Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a moment she did so; but
6284 no attitude could give her ease; and in restless pain of mind and body
6285 she moved from one posture to another, till growing more and more
6286 hysterical, her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at
6287 all, and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call for
6288 assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she was at length
6289 persuaded to take, were of use; and from that time till Mrs. Jennings
6290 returned, she continued on the bed quiet and motionless.
6291
6292
6293
6294 CHAPTER 30
6295
6296
6297 Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return, and without
6298 waiting to have her request of admittance answered, opened the door and
6299 walked in with a look of real concern.
6300
6301 "How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great compassion to
6302 Marianne, who turned away her face without attempting to answer.
6303
6304 "How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.-- No
6305 wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married very soon--a
6306 good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience with him. Mrs. Taylor
6307 told me of it half an hour ago, and she was told it by a particular
6308 friend of Miss Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed
6309 it; and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I, all I can
6310 say is, that if this be true, he has used a young lady of my
6311 acquaintance abominably ill, and I wish with all my soul his wife may
6312 plague his heart out. And so I shall always say, my dear, you may
6313 depend on it. I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if
6314 ever I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he has not
6315 had this many a day. But there is one comfort, my dear Miss Marianne;
6316 he is not the only young man in the world worth having; and with your
6317 pretty face you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
6318 disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry out at once and
6319 have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons luckily are coming tonight
6320 you know, and that will amuse her."
6321
6322 She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room, as if she
6323 supposed her young friend's affliction could be increased by noise.
6324
6325 Marianne, to the surprise of her sister, determined on dining with
6326 them. Elinor even advised her against it. But "no, she would go down;
6327 she could bear it very well, and the bustle about her would be less."
6328 Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a moment by such a motive,
6329 though believing it hardly possible that she could sit out the dinner,
6330 said no more; and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
6331 while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready to assist her into
6332 the dining room as soon as they were summoned to it.
6333
6334 When there, though looking most wretchedly, she ate more and was calmer
6335 than her sister had expected. Had she tried to speak, or had she been
6336 conscious of half Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
6337 to her, this calmness could not have been maintained; but not a
6338 syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction of her thoughts
6339 preserved her in ignorance of every thing that was passing before her.
6340
6341 Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness, though its
6342 effusions were often distressing, and sometimes almost ridiculous, made
6343 her those acknowledgments, and returned her those civilities, which her
6344 sister could not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
6345 that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing was due to her
6346 which might make her at all less so. She treated her therefore, with
6347 all the indulgent fondness of a parent towards a favourite child on the
6348 last day of its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the
6349 fire, was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house, and to
6350 be amused by the relation of all the news of the day. Had not Elinor,
6351 in the sad countenance of her sister, seen a check to all mirth, she
6352 could have been entertained by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a
6353 disappointment in love, by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a
6354 good fire. As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
6355 forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could stay no longer.
6356 With a hasty exclamation of Misery, and a sign to her sister not to
6357 follow her, she directly got up and hurried out of the room.
6358
6359 "Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone, "how it
6360 grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is not gone away without
6361 finishing her wine! And the dried cherries too! Lord! nothing seems
6362 to do her any good. I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I
6363 would send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest thing to
6364 me, that a man should use such a pretty girl so ill! But when there is
6365 plenty of money on one side, and next to none on the other, Lord bless
6366 you! they care no more about such things!--"
6367
6368 "The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--is very rich?"
6369
6370 "Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see her? a smart,
6371 stylish girl they say, but not handsome. I remember her aunt very
6372 well, Biddy Henshawe; she married a very wealthy man. But the family
6373 are all rich together. Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it
6374 won't come before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces. No
6375 wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters! Well, it don't
6376 signify talking; but when a young man, be who he will, comes and makes
6377 love to a pretty girl, and promises marriage, he has no business to fly
6378 off from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer girl is
6379 ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case, sell his horses, let
6380 his house, turn off his servants, and make a thorough reform at once? I
6381 warrant you, Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
6382 came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the way of
6383 pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of this age."
6384
6385 "Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is? Is she said to be
6386 amiable?"
6387
6388 "I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever heard her
6389 mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say this morning, that one day
6390 Miss Walker hinted to her, that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would
6391 not be sorry to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
6392 never agree."--
6393
6394 "And who are the Ellisons?"
6395
6396 "Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age and may choose for
6397 herself; and a pretty choice she has made!--What now," after pausing a
6398 moment--"your poor sister is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan
6399 by herself. Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
6400 it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we shall
6401 have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little. What shall we
6402 play at? She hates whist I know; but is there no round game she cares
6403 for?"
6404
6405 "Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary. Marianne, I dare say,
6406 will not leave her room again this evening. I shall persuade her if I
6407 can to go early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
6408
6409 "Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name her own
6410 supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has been looking so bad and
6411 so cast down this last week or two, for this matter I suppose has been
6412 hanging over her head as long as that. And so the letter that came
6413 today finished it! Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
6414 I would not have joked her about it for all my money. But then you
6415 know, how should I guess such a thing? I made sure of its being
6416 nothing but a common love letter, and you know young people like to be
6417 laughed at about them. Lord! how concerned Sir John and my daughters
6418 will be when they hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have
6419 called in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it. But I
6420 shall see them tomorrow."
6421
6422 "It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution Mrs. Palmer and
6423 Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby, or making the slightest
6424 allusion to what has passed, before my sister. Their own good-nature
6425 must point out to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
6426 about it when she is present; and the less that may ever be said to
6427 myself on the subject, the more my feelings will be spared, as you my
6428 dear madam will easily believe."
6429
6430 "Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible for you to hear
6431 it talked of; and as for your sister, I am sure I would not mention a
6432 word about it to her for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
6433 No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are all very
6434 thoughtful and considerate; especially if I give them a hint, as I
6435 certainly will. For my part, I think the less that is said about such
6436 things, the better, the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what
6437 does talking ever do you know?"
6438
6439 "In this affair it can only do harm; more so perhaps than in many cases
6440 of a similar kind, for it has been attended by circumstances which, for
6441 the sake of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become the
6442 public conversation. I must do THIS justice to Mr. Willoughby--he has
6443 broken no positive engagement with my sister."
6444
6445 "Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him. No positive engagement
6446 indeed! after taking her all over Allenham House, and fixing on the
6447 very rooms they were to live in hereafter!"
6448
6449 Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the subject farther, and
6450 she hoped it was not required of her for Willoughby's; since, though
6451 Marianne might lose much, he could gain very little by the enforcement
6452 of the real truth. After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
6453 with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
6454
6455 "Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind, for it will be
6456 all the better for Colonel Brandon. He will have her at last; aye,
6457 that he will. Mind me, now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord!
6458 how he'll chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight. It
6459 will be all to one a better match for your sister. Two thousand a year
6460 without debt or drawback--except the little love-child, indeed; aye, I
6461 had forgot her; but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
6462 what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can tell you;
6463 exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place, full of comforts and
6464 conveniences; quite shut in with great garden walls that are covered
6465 with the best fruit-trees in the country; and such a mulberry tree in
6466 one corner! Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we were
6467 there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful stew-ponds, and a
6468 very pretty canal; and every thing, in short, that one could wish for;
6469 and, moreover, it is close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile
6470 from the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only go and sit
6471 up in an old yew arbour behind the house, you may see all the carriages
6472 that pass along. Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the
6473 village, and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw. To my fancy,
6474 a thousand times prettier than Barton Park, where they are forced to
6475 send three miles for their meat, and have not a neighbour nearer than
6476 your mother. Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
6477 One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down. If we CAN but
6478 put Willoughby out of her head!"
6479
6480 "Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor, "we shall do very well
6481 with or without Colonel Brandon." And then rising, she went away to
6482 join Marianne, whom she found, as she expected, in her own room,
6483 leaning, in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire, which,
6484 till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
6485
6486 "You had better leave me," was all the notice that her sister received
6487 from her.
6488
6489 "I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go to bed." But this,
6490 from the momentary perverseness of impatient suffering, she at first
6491 refused to do. Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion,
6492 however, soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her lay her
6493 aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped, in a way to get some quiet
6494 rest before she left her.
6495
6496 In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired, she was soon joined by
6497 Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass, full of something, in her hand.
6498
6499 "My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected that I have
6500 some of the finest old Constantia wine in the house that ever was
6501 tasted, so I have brought a glass of it for your sister. My poor
6502 husband! how fond he was of it! Whenever he had a touch of his old
6503 colicky gout, he said it did him more good than any thing else in the
6504 world. Do take it to your sister."
6505
6506 "Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference of the
6507 complaints for which it was recommended, "how good you are! But I have
6508 just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope, almost asleep; and as I think
6509 nothing will be of so much service to her as rest, if you will give me
6510 leave, I will drink the wine myself."
6511
6512 Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been five minutes
6513 earlier, was satisfied with the compromise; and Elinor, as she
6514 swallowed the chief of it, reflected, that though its effects on a
6515 colicky gout were, at present, of little importance to her, its healing
6516 powers, on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried on herself
6517 as on her sister.
6518
6519 Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea, and by his manner
6520 of looking round the room for Marianne, Elinor immediately fancied that
6521 he neither expected nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
6522 was already aware of what occasioned her absence. Mrs. Jennings was
6523 not struck by the same thought; for soon after his entrance, she walked
6524 across the room to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
6525 "The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows nothing of it;
6526 do tell him, my dear."
6527
6528 He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to hers, and, with a look
6529 which perfectly assured her of his good information, inquired after her
6530 sister.
6531
6532 "Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been indisposed all day,
6533 and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
6534
6535 "Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I heard this morning
6536 may be--there may be more truth in it than I could believe possible at
6537 first."
6538
6539 "What did you hear?"
6540
6541 "That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short, that a man,
6542 whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I tell you? If you know it
6543 already, as surely you must, I may be spared."
6544
6545 "You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness, "Mr. Willoughby's
6546 marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO know it all. This seems to have
6547 been a day of general elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded
6548 it to us. Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
6549
6550 "In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I had business. Two ladies
6551 were waiting for their carriage, and one of them was giving the other
6552 an account of the intended match, in a voice so little attempting
6553 concealment, that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
6554 of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated, first caught my
6555 attention; and what followed was a positive assertion that every thing
6556 was now finally settled respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was
6557 no longer to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
6558 with many particulars of preparations and other matters. One thing,
6559 especially, I remember, because it served to identify the man still
6560 more:--as soon as the ceremony was over, they were to go to Combe
6561 Magna, his seat in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
6562 impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative lady I learnt,
6563 on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop till they were gone, was a Mrs.
6564 Ellison, and that, as I have been since informed, is the name of Miss
6565 Grey's guardian."
6566
6567 "It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey has fifty thousand
6568 pounds? In that, if in any thing, we may find an explanation."
6569
6570 "It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least I think"--he stopped
6571 a moment; then added in a voice which seemed to distrust itself, "And
6572 your sister--how did she--"
6573
6574 "Her sufferings have been very severe. I have only to hope that they
6575 may be proportionately short. It has been, it is a most cruel
6576 affliction. Till yesterday, I believe, she never doubted his regard;
6577 and even now, perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
6578 really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and, in some
6579 points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
6580
6581 "Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But your sister does
6582 not--I think you said so--she does not consider quite as you do?"
6583
6584 "You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly she would still
6585 justify him if she could."
6586
6587 He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal of the
6588 tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties, the subject was
6589 necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had watched them with pleasure
6590 while they were talking, and who expected to see the effect of Miss
6591 Dashwood's communication, in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel
6592 Brandon's side, as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of
6593 hope and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole evening
6594 more serious and thoughtful than usual.
6595
6596
6597
6598 CHAPTER 31
6599
6600
6601 From a night of more sleep than she had expected, Marianne awoke the
6602 next morning to the same consciousness of misery in which she had
6603 closed her eyes.
6604
6605 Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk of what she felt; and
6606 before breakfast was ready, they had gone through the subject again and
6607 again; and with the same steady conviction and affectionate counsel on
6608 Elinor's side, the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
6609 Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe Willoughby to be as
6610 unfortunate and as innocent as herself, and at others, lost every
6611 consolation in the impossibility of acquitting him. At one moment she
6612 was absolutely indifferent to the observation of all the world, at
6613 another she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
6614 could resist it with energy. In one thing, however, she was uniform,
6615 when it came to the point, in avoiding, where it was possible, the
6616 presence of Mrs. Jennings, and in a determined silence when obliged to
6617 endure it. Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs.
6618 Jennings's entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
6619
6620 "No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried; "she cannot feel. Her kindness
6621 is not sympathy; her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
6622 is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
6623
6624 Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice to which her
6625 sister was often led in her opinion of others, by the irritable
6626 refinement of her own mind, and the too great importance placed by her
6627 on the delicacies of a strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished
6628 manner. Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there be
6629 that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent abilities and an
6630 excellent disposition, was neither reasonable nor candid. She expected
6631 from other people the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she
6632 judged of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions on
6633 herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the sisters were together
6634 in their own room after breakfast, which sunk the heart of Mrs.
6635 Jennings still lower in her estimation; because, through her own
6636 weakness, it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself, though
6637 Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse of the utmost goodwill.
6638
6639 With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance gaily smiling,
6640 from the persuasion of bringing comfort, she entered their room, saying,
6641
6642 "Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure will do you good."
6643
6644 Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination placed before her
6645 a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness and contrition,
6646 explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory, convincing; and
6647 instantly followed by Willoughby himself, rushing eagerly into the room
6648 to inforce, at her feet, by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances
6649 of his letter. The work of one moment was destroyed by the next. The
6650 hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome, was before her;
6651 and, in the acuteness of the disappointment which followed such an
6652 ecstasy of more than hope, she felt as if, till that instant, she had
6653 never suffered.
6654
6655 The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within her reach in her
6656 moments of happiest eloquence, could have expressed; and now she could
6657 reproach her only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
6658 passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely lost on its
6659 object, that after many expressions of pity, she withdrew, still
6660 referring her to the letter of comfort. But the letter, when she was
6661 calm enough to read it, brought little comfort. Willoughby filled
6662 every page. Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and
6663 relying as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused by
6664 Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater openness towards
6665 them both; and this, with such tenderness towards her, such affection
6666 for Willoughby, and such a conviction of their future happiness in each
6667 other, that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
6668
6669 All her impatience to be at home again now returned; her mother was
6670 dearer to her than ever; dearer through the very excess of her mistaken
6671 confidence in Willoughby, and she was wildly urgent to be gone.
6672 Elinor, unable herself to determine whether it were better for Marianne
6673 to be in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own except of
6674 patience till their mother's wishes could be known; and at length she
6675 obtained her sister's consent to wait for that knowledge.
6676
6677 Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she could not be easy
6678 till the Middletons and Palmers were able to grieve as much as herself;
6679 and positively refusing Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for
6680 the rest of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of the
6681 pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving, by Marianne's
6682 letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying any foundation for it, then
6683 sat down to write her mother an account of what had passed, and entreat
6684 her directions for the future; while Marianne, who came into the
6685 drawing-room on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
6686 where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen, grieving over
6687 her for the hardship of such a task, and grieving still more fondly
6688 over its effect on her mother.
6689
6690 In this manner they had continued about a quarter of an hour, when
6691 Marianne, whose nerves could not then bear any sudden noise, was
6692 startled by a rap at the door.
6693
6694 "Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I thought we HAD been
6695 safe."
6696
6697 Marianne moved to the window--
6698
6699 "It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation. "We are never safe
6700 from HIM."
6701
6702 "He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
6703
6704 "I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room. "A man who has
6705 nothing to do with his own time has no conscience in his intrusion on
6706 that of others."
6707
6708 The event proved her conjecture right, though it was founded on
6709 injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon DID come in; and Elinor, who
6710 was convinced that solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who
6711 saw THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look, and in his
6712 anxious though brief inquiry after her, could not forgive her sister
6713 for esteeming him so lightly.
6714
6715 "I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he, after the first
6716 salutation, "and she encouraged me to come on; and I was the more
6717 easily encouraged, because I thought it probable that I might find you
6718 alone, which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my wish--my sole
6719 wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe it is--is to be a means of
6720 giving comfort;--no, I must not say comfort--not present comfort--but
6721 conviction, lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for
6722 her, for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it, by
6723 relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY sincere
6724 regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being useful--I think I am
6725 justified--though where so many hours have been spent in convincing
6726 myself that I am right, is there not some reason to fear I may be
6727 wrong?" He stopped.
6728
6729 "I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something to tell me of Mr.
6730 Willoughby, that will open his character farther. Your telling it will
6731 be the greatest act of friendship that can be shewn Marianne. MY
6732 gratitude will be insured immediately by any information tending to
6733 that end, and HERS must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me
6734 hear it."
6735
6736 "You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton last October,--but
6737 this will give you no idea--I must go farther back. You will find me a
6738 very awkward narrator, Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A
6739 short account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it SHALL be
6740 a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily, "can I have little
6741 temptation to be diffuse."
6742
6743 He stopt a moment for recollection, and then, with another sigh, went
6744 on.
6745
6746 "You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--(it is not to be
6747 supposed that it could make any impression on you)--a conversation
6748 between us one evening at Barton Park--it was the evening of a
6749 dance--in which I alluded to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in
6750 some measure, your sister Marianne."
6751
6752 "Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it." He looked pleased
6753 by this remembrance, and added,
6754
6755 "If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality of tender
6756 recollection, there is a very strong resemblance between them, as well
6757 in mind as person. The same warmth of heart, the same eagerness of
6758 fancy and spirits. This lady was one of my nearest relations, an
6759 orphan from her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father. Our
6760 ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years we were
6761 playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the time when I did not
6762 love Eliza; and my affection for her, as we grew up, was such, as
6763 perhaps, judging from my present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you
6764 might think me incapable of having ever felt. Hers, for me, was, I
6765 believe, fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby and
6766 it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate. At
6767 seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was married--married
6768 against her inclination to my brother. Her fortune was large, and our
6769 family estate much encumbered. And this, I fear, is all that can be
6770 said for the conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
6771 My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her. I had hoped
6772 that her regard for me would support her under any difficulty, and for
6773 some time it did; but at last the misery of her situation, for she
6774 experienced great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
6775 she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I relate! I have
6776 never told you how this was brought on. We were within a few hours of
6777 eloping together for Scotland. The treachery, or the folly, of my
6778 cousin's maid betrayed us. I was banished to the house of a relation
6779 far distant, and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
6780 till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her fortitude too
6781 far, and the blow was a severe one--but had her marriage been happy, so
6782 young as I then was, a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at
6783 least I should not have now to lament it. This however was not the
6784 case. My brother had no regard for her; his pleasures were not what
6785 they ought to have been, and from the first he treated her unkindly.
6786 The consequence of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so
6787 inexperienced as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
6788 herself at first to all the misery of her situation; and happy had it
6789 been if she had not lived to overcome those regrets which the
6790 remembrance of me occasioned. But can we wonder that, with such a
6791 husband to provoke inconstancy, and without a friend to advise or
6792 restrain her (for my father lived only a few months after their
6793 marriage, and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she should
6794 fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I meant to promote the
6795 happiness of both by removing from her for years, and for that purpose
6796 had procured my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
6797 he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of trifling
6798 weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard, about two years
6799 afterwards, of her divorce. It was THAT which threw this gloom,--even
6800 now the recollection of what I suffered--"
6801
6802 He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few minutes about
6803 the room. Elinor, affected by his relation, and still more by his
6804 distress, could not speak. He saw her concern, and coming to her, took
6805 her hand, pressed it, and kissed it with grateful respect. A few
6806 minutes more of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
6807
6808 "It was nearly three years after this unhappy period before I returned
6809 to England. My first care, when I DID arrive, was of course to seek
6810 for her; but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy. I could
6811 not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there was every reason to
6812 fear that she had removed from him only to sink deeper in a life of
6813 sin. Her legal allowance was not adequate to her fortune, nor
6814 sufficient for her comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my
6815 brother that the power of receiving it had been made over some months
6816 before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he imagine it,
6817 that her extravagance, and consequent distress, had obliged her to
6818 dispose of it for some immediate relief. At last, however, and after I
6819 had been six months in England, I DID find her. Regard for a former
6820 servant of my own, who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to
6821 visit him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt; and
6822 there, in the same house, under a similar confinement, was my unfortunate
6823 sister. So altered--so faded--worn down by acute suffering of every
6824 kind! hardly could I believe the melancholy and sickly figure before
6825 me, to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl, on whom
6826 I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding her--but I have no
6827 right to wound your feelings by attempting to describe it--I have
6828 pained you too much already. That she was, to all appearance, in the
6829 last stage of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was my
6830 greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her, beyond giving time
6831 for a better preparation for death; and that was given. I saw her
6832 placed in comfortable lodgings, and under proper attendants; I visited
6833 her every day during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
6834 last moments."
6835
6836 Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor spoke her feelings in
6837 an exclamation of tender concern, at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
6838
6839 "Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he, "by the resemblance
6840 I have fancied between her and my poor disgraced relation. Their
6841 fates, their fortunes, cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
6842 disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind, or a happier
6843 marriage, she might have been all that you will live to see the other
6844 be. But to what does all this lead? I seem to have been distressing
6845 you for nothing. Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
6846 for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all! I WILL be
6847 more collected--more concise. She left to my care her only child, a
6848 little girl, the offspring of her first guilty connection, who was then
6849 about three years old. She loved the child, and had always kept it
6850 with her. It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly would I
6851 have discharged it in the strictest sense, by watching over her
6852 education myself, had the nature of our situations allowed it; but I
6853 had no family, no home; and my little Eliza was therefore placed at
6854 school. I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
6855 brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which left to me the
6856 possession of the family property,) she visited me at Delaford. I
6857 called her a distant relation; but I am well aware that I have in
6858 general been suspected of a much nearer connection with her. It is now
6859 three years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,) that I
6860 removed her from school, to place her under the care of a very
6861 respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire, who had the charge of four
6862 or five other girls of about the same time of life; and for two years I
6863 had every reason to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
6864 almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared. I had allowed
6865 her, (imprudently, as it has since turned out,) at her earnest desire,
6866 to go to Bath with one of her young friends, who was attending her
6867 father there for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
6868 and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved, for, with
6869 a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy, she would tell nothing, would
6870 give no clue, though she certainly knew all. He, her father, a
6871 well-meaning, but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
6872 give no information; for he had been generally confined to the house,
6873 while the girls were ranging over the town and making what acquaintance
6874 they chose; and he tried to convince me, as thoroughly as he was
6875 convinced himself, of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the
6876 business. In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone; all
6877 the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture. What I
6878 thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I suffered too."
6879
6880 "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could Willoughby!"--
6881
6882 "The first news that reached me of her," he continued, "came in a
6883 letter from herself, last October. It was forwarded to me from
6884 Delaford, and I received it on the very morning of our intended party
6885 to Whitwell; and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
6886 which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange to every body,
6887 and which I believe gave offence to some. Little did Mr. Willoughby
6888 imagine, I suppose, when his looks censured me for incivility in
6889 breaking up the party, that I was called away to the relief of one whom
6890 he had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it, what would it have
6891 availed? Would he have been less gay or less happy in the smiles of
6892 your sister? No, he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
6893 for another would do. He had left the girl whose youth and innocence
6894 he had seduced, in a situation of the utmost distress, with no
6895 creditable home, no help, no friends, ignorant of his address! He had
6896 left her, promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote, nor
6897 relieved her."
6898
6899 "This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
6900
6901 "His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated, and worse than
6902 both. Knowing all this, as I have now known it many weeks, guess what
6903 I must have felt on seeing your sister as fond of him as ever, and on
6904 being assured that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
6905 for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and found you alone,
6906 I came determined to know the truth; though irresolute what to do when
6907 it WAS known. My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then; but
6908 now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be so deceived; to
6909 see your sister--but what could I do? I had no hope of interfering
6910 with success; and sometimes I thought your sister's influence might yet
6911 reclaim him. But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
6912 were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been, however, she may
6913 now, and hereafter doubtless WILL turn with gratitude towards her own
6914 condition, when she compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she
6915 considers the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl, and
6916 pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong, still as
6917 strong as her own, and with a mind tormented by self-reproach, which
6918 must attend her through life. Surely this comparison must have its use
6919 with her. She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
6920 proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace. On the
6921 contrary, every friend must be made still more her friend by them.
6922 Concern for her unhappiness, and respect for her fortitude under it,
6923 must strengthen every attachment. Use your own discretion, however, in
6924 communicating to her what I have told you. You must know best what
6925 will be its effect; but had I not seriously, and from my heart believed
6926 it might be of service, might lessen her regrets, I would not have
6927 suffered myself to trouble you with this account of my family
6928 afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been intended to
6929 raise myself at the expense of others."
6930
6931 Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful earnestness;
6932 attended too with the assurance of her expecting material advantage to
6933 Marianne, from the communication of what had passed.
6934
6935 "I have been more pained," said she, "by her endeavors to acquit him
6936 than by all the rest; for it irritates her mind more than the most
6937 perfect conviction of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first
6938 she will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier. Have
6939 you," she continued, after a short silence, "ever seen Mr. Willoughby
6940 since you left him at Barton?"
6941
6942 "Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting was unavoidable."
6943
6944 Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously, saying,
6945
6946 "What? have you met him to--"
6947
6948 "I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed to me, though most
6949 reluctantly, the name of her lover; and when he returned to town, which
6950 was within a fortnight after myself, we met by appointment, he to
6951 defend, I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded, and the
6952 meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
6953
6954 Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this; but to a man and a
6955 soldier she presumed not to censure it.
6956
6957 "Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause, "has been the unhappy
6958 resemblance between the fate of mother and daughter! and so imperfectly
6959 have I discharged my trust!"
6960
6961 "Is she still in town?"
6962
6963 "No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in, for I found her near
6964 her delivery, I removed her and her child into the country, and there
6965 she remains."
6966
6967 Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably dividing Elinor
6968 from her sister, he put an end to his visit, receiving from her again
6969 the same grateful acknowledgments, and leaving her full of compassion
6970 and esteem for him.
6971
6972
6973
6974 CHAPTER 32
6975
6976
6977 When the particulars of this conversation were repeated by Miss
6978 Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were, the effect on her was
6979 not entirely such as the former had hoped to see. Not that Marianne
6980 appeared to distrust the truth of any part of it, for she listened to
6981 it all with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
6982 objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby, and
6983 seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to be impossible. But
6984 though this behaviour assured Elinor that the conviction of this guilt
6985 WAS carried home to her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the
6986 effect of it, in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
6987 in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking, with a kind of
6988 compassionate respect, and though she saw her spirits less violently
6989 irritated than before, she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did
6990 become settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection. She felt the
6991 loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily than she had felt the
6992 loss of his heart; his seduction and desertion of Miss Williams, the
6993 misery of that poor girl, and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE
6994 have been on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits, that
6995 she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt even to Elinor;
6996 and, brooding over her sorrows in silence, gave more pain to her sister
6997 than could have been communicated by the most open and most frequent
6998 confession of them.
6999
7000 To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood on receiving and
7001 answering Elinor's letter would be only to give a repetition of what
7002 her daughters had already felt and said; of a disappointment hardly
7003 less painful than Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than
7004 Elinor's. Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
7005 arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought; to express her
7006 anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat she would bear up with
7007 fortitude under this misfortune. Bad indeed must the nature of
7008 Marianne's affliction be, when her mother could talk of fortitude!
7009 mortifying and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets, which
7010 SHE could wish her not to indulge!
7011
7012 Against the interest of her own individual comfort, Mrs. Dashwood had
7013 determined that it would be better for Marianne to be any where, at
7014 that time, than at Barton, where every thing within her view would be
7015 bringing back the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner, by
7016 constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as she had always seen
7017 him there. She recommended it to her daughters, therefore, by all
7018 means not to shorten their visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which,
7019 though never exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at
7020 least five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects, and of
7021 company, which could not be procured at Barton, would be inevitable
7022 there, and might yet, she hoped, cheat Marianne, at times, into some
7023 interest beyond herself, and even into some amusement, much as the
7024 ideas of both might now be spurned by her.
7025
7026 From all danger of seeing Willoughby again, her mother considered her
7027 to be at least equally safe in town as in the country, since his
7028 acquaintance must now be dropped by all who called themselves her
7029 friends. Design could never bring them in each other's way: negligence
7030 could never leave them exposed to a surprise; and chance had less in
7031 its favour in the crowd of London than even in the retirement of
7032 Barton, where it might force him before her while paying that visit at
7033 Allenham on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at first
7034 as a probable event, had brought herself to expect as a certain one.
7035
7036 She had yet another reason for wishing her children to remain where
7037 they were; a letter from her son-in-law had told her that he and his
7038 wife were to be in town before the middle of February, and she judged
7039 it right that they should sometimes see their brother.
7040
7041 Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion, and she
7042 submitted to it therefore without opposition, though it proved
7043 perfectly different from what she wished and expected, though she felt
7044 it to be entirely wrong, formed on mistaken grounds, and that by
7045 requiring her longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
7046 possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal sympathy of her
7047 mother, and doomed her to such society and such scenes as must prevent
7048 her ever knowing a moment's rest.
7049
7050 But it was a matter of great consolation to her, that what brought evil
7051 to herself would bring good to her sister; and Elinor, on the other
7052 hand, suspecting that it would not be in her power to avoid Edward
7053 entirely, comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer stay
7054 would therefore militate against her own happiness, it would be better
7055 for Marianne than an immediate return into Devonshire.
7056
7057 Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever hearing Willoughby's
7058 name mentioned, was not thrown away. Marianne, though without knowing
7059 it herself, reaped all its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor
7060 Sir John, nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
7061 Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended towards
7062 herself, but that was impossible, and she was obliged to listen day
7063 after day to the indignation of them all.
7064
7065 Sir John, could not have thought it possible. "A man of whom he had
7066 always had such reason to think well! Such a good-natured fellow! He
7067 did not believe there was a bolder rider in England! It was an
7068 unaccountable business. He wished him at the devil with all his heart.
7069 He would not speak another word to him, meet him where he might, for
7070 all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side of Barton covert,
7071 and they were kept watching for two hours together. Such a scoundrel
7072 of a fellow! such a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
7073 that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this was the end of
7074 it!"
7075
7076 Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry. "She was determined to
7077 drop his acquaintance immediately, and she was very thankful that she
7078 had never been acquainted with him at all. She wished with all her
7079 heart Combe Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
7080 for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated him so much
7081 that she was resolved never to mention his name again, and she should
7082 tell everybody she saw, how good-for-nothing he was."
7083
7084 The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring all the
7085 particulars in her power of the approaching marriage, and communicating
7086 them to Elinor. She could soon tell at what coachmaker's the new
7087 carriage was building, by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was
7088 drawn, and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
7089
7090 The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton on the occasion was a
7091 happy relief to Elinor's spirits, oppressed as they often were by the
7092 clamorous kindness of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be
7093 sure of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their circle
7094 of friends: a great comfort to know that there was ONE who would meet
7095 her without feeling any curiosity after particulars, or any anxiety for
7096 her sister's health.
7097
7098 Every qualification is raised at times, by the circumstances of the
7099 moment, to more than its real value; and she was sometimes worried down
7100 by officious condolence to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to
7101 comfort than good-nature.
7102
7103 Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair about once every day,
7104 or twice, if the subject occurred very often, by saying, "It is very
7105 shocking, indeed!" and by the means of this continual though gentle
7106 vent, was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the first
7107 without the smallest emotion, but very soon to see them without
7108 recollecting a word of the matter; and having thus supported the
7109 dignity of her own sex, and spoken her decided censure of what was
7110 wrong in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend to the
7111 interest of her own assemblies, and therefore determined (though rather
7112 against the opinion of Sir John) that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once
7113 be a woman of elegance and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon
7114 as she married.
7115
7116 Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries were never unwelcome
7117 to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly earned the privilege of intimate
7118 discussion of her sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
7119 which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always conversed with
7120 confidence. His chief reward for the painful exertion of disclosing
7121 past sorrows and present humiliations, was given in the pitying eye
7122 with which Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness of her
7123 voice whenever (though it did not often happen) she was obliged, or
7124 could oblige herself to speak to him. THESE assured him that his
7125 exertion had produced an increase of good-will towards himself, and
7126 THESE gave Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter; but
7127 Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew only that the
7128 Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that she could neither prevail
7129 on him to make the offer himself, nor commission her to make it for
7130 him, began, at the end of two days, to think that, instead of
7131 Midsummer, they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the end of
7132 a week that it would not be a match at all. The good understanding
7133 between the Colonel and Miss Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the
7134 honours of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour, would all
7135 be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had, for some time ceased to
7136 think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
7137
7138 Early in February, within a fortnight from the receipt of Willoughby's
7139 letter, Elinor had the painful office of informing her sister that he
7140 was married. She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed to
7141 herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony was over, as she was
7142 desirous that Marianne should not receive the first notice of it from
7143 the public papers, which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
7144
7145 She received the news with resolute composure; made no observation on
7146 it, and at first shed no tears; but after a short time they would burst
7147 out, and for the rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less
7148 pitiable than when she first learnt to expect the event.
7149
7150 The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married; and Elinor now
7151 hoped, as there could be no danger of her seeing either of them, to
7152 prevail on her sister, who had never yet left the house since the blow
7153 first fell, to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
7154
7155 About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived at their cousin's
7156 house in Bartlett's Buildings, Holburn, presented themselves again
7157 before their more grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets; and
7158 were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
7159
7160 Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence always gave her
7161 pain, and she hardly knew how to make a very gracious return to the
7162 overpowering delight of Lucy in finding her STILL in town.
7163
7164 "I should have been quite disappointed if I had not found you here
7165 STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong emphasis on the word. "But
7166 I always thought I SHOULD. I was almost sure you would not leave
7167 London yet awhile; though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you
7168 should not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time, that you
7169 would most likely change your mind when it came to the point. It would
7170 have been such a great pity to have went away before your brother and
7171 sister came. And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone. I
7172 am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
7173
7174 Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced to use all her
7175 self-command to make it appear that she did NOT.
7176
7177 "Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did you travel?"
7178
7179 "Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele, with quick
7180 exultation; "we came post all the way, and had a very smart beau to
7181 attend us. Dr. Davies was coming to town, and so we thought we'd join
7182 him in a post-chaise; and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or
7183 twelve shillings more than we did."
7184
7185 "Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty, indeed! and the Doctor is
7186 a single man, I warrant you."
7187
7188 "There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering, "everybody laughs
7189 at me so about the Doctor, and I cannot think why. My cousins say they
7190 are sure I have made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never
7191 think about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here comes your
7192 beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day, when she saw him crossing the
7193 street to the house. My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you
7194 mean. The Doctor is no beau of mine."
7195
7196 "Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--the Doctor is
7197 the man, I see."
7198
7199 "No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness, "and I beg
7200 you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
7201
7202 Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying assurance that she
7203 certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele was made completely happy.
7204
7205 "I suppose you will go and stay with your brother and sister, Miss
7206 Dashwood, when they come to town," said Lucy, returning, after a
7207 cessation of hostile hints, to the charge.
7208
7209 "No, I do not think we shall."
7210
7211 "Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
7212
7213 Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
7214
7215 "What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can spare you both for
7216 so long a time together!"
7217
7218 "Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings. "Why, their visit is
7219 but just begun!"
7220
7221 Lucy was silenced.
7222
7223 "I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood," said Miss
7224 Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--" for Marianne had left the room
7225 on their arrival.
7226
7227 "You are very good. My sister will be equally sorry to miss the
7228 pleasure of seeing you; but she has been very much plagued lately with
7229 nervous head-aches, which make her unfit for company or conversation."
7230
7231 "Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old friends as Lucy and
7232 me!--I think she might see US; and I am sure we would not speak a word."
7233
7234 Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal. Her sister was
7235 perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her dressing gown, and therefore
7236 not able to come to them.
7237
7238 "Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can just as well go and see
7239 HER."
7240
7241 Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for her temper; but she
7242 was saved the trouble of checking it, by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which
7243 now, as on many occasions, though it did not give much sweetness to the
7244 manners of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of the other.
7245
7246
7247
7248 CHAPTER 33
7249
7250
7251 After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her sister's entreaties, and
7252 consented to go out with her and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an
7253 hour. She expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits, and
7254 would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in Sackville Street,
7255 where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation for the exchange of a few
7256 old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
7257
7258 When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected that there was
7259 a lady at the other end of the street on whom she ought to call; and as
7260 she had no business at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young
7261 friends transacted their's, she should pay her visit and return for
7262 them.
7263
7264 On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found so many people before
7265 them in the room, that there was not a person at liberty to tend to
7266 their orders; and they were obliged to wait. All that could be done
7267 was, to sit down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
7268 quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there, and it is
7269 probable that Elinor was not without hope of exciting his politeness to
7270 a quicker despatch. But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
7271 of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness. He was giving orders
7272 for a toothpick-case for himself, and till its size, shape, and
7273 ornaments were determined, all of which, after examining and debating
7274 for a quarter of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop, were
7275 finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had no leisure to
7276 bestow any other attention on the two ladies, than what was comprised
7277 in three or four very broad stares; a kind of notice which served to
7278 imprint on Elinor the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
7279 natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in the first style of
7280 fashion.
7281
7282 Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings of contempt and
7283 resentment, on this impertinent examination of their features, and on
7284 the puppyism of his manner in deciding on all the different horrors of
7285 the different toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
7286 unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect her thoughts
7287 within herself, and be as ignorant of what was passing around her, in
7288 Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
7289
7290 At last the affair was decided. The ivory, the gold, and the pearls,
7291 all received their appointment, and the gentleman having named the last
7292 day on which his existence could be continued without the possession of
7293 the toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care, and
7294 bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such a one as
7295 seemed rather to demand than express admiration, walked off with a
7296 happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
7297
7298 Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward, was on the point
7299 of concluding it, when another gentleman presented himself at her side.
7300 She turned her eyes towards his face, and found him with some surprise
7301 to be her brother.
7302
7303 Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough to make a very
7304 creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop. John Dashwood was really far
7305 from being sorry to see his sisters again; it rather gave them
7306 satisfaction; and his inquiries after their mother were respectful and
7307 attentive.
7308
7309 Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town two days.
7310
7311 "I wished very much to call upon you yesterday," said he, "but it was
7312 impossible, for we were obliged to take Harry to see the wild beasts at
7313 Exeter Exchange; and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
7314 Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended to call on
7315 you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour, but one has always so
7316 much to do on first coming to town. I am come here to bespeak Fanny a
7317 seal. But tomorrow I think I shall certainly be able to call in
7318 Berkeley Street, and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings. I
7319 understand she is a woman of very good fortune. And the Middletons
7320 too, you must introduce me to THEM. As my mother-in-law's relations, I
7321 shall be happy to show them every respect. They are excellent
7322 neighbours to you in the country, I understand."
7323
7324 "Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort, their friendliness
7325 in every particular, is more than I can express."
7326
7327 "I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word; extremely glad indeed.
7328 But so it ought to be; they are people of large fortune, they are
7329 related to you, and every civility and accommodation that can serve to
7330 make your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected. And so you
7331 are most comfortably settled in your little cottage and want for
7332 nothing! Edward brought us a most charming account of the place: the
7333 most complete thing of its kind, he said, that ever was, and you all
7334 seemed to enjoy it beyond any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us
7335 to hear it, I assure you."
7336
7337 Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother; and was not sorry to
7338 be spared the necessity of answering him, by the arrival of Mrs.
7339 Jennings's servant, who came to tell her that his mistress waited for
7340 them at the door.
7341
7342 Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced to Mrs. Jennings
7343 at the door of her carriage, and repeating his hope of being able to
7344 call on them the next day, took leave.
7345
7346 His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at an apology from
7347 their sister-in-law, for not coming too; "but she was so much engaged
7348 with her mother, that really she had no leisure for going any where."
7349 Mrs. Jennings, however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
7350 upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something like it, and she
7351 should certainly wait on Mrs. John Dashwood very soon, and bring her
7352 sisters to see her. His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly
7353 kind; to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
7354 Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a curiosity
7355 which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know him to be rich, to be
7356 equally civil to HIM.
7357
7358 After staying with them half an hour, he asked Elinor to walk with him
7359 to Conduit Street, and introduce him to Sir John and Lady Middleton.
7360 The weather was remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon as
7361 they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
7362
7363 "Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
7364
7365 "Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
7366
7367 "I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man; and I think,
7368 Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect of a very respectable
7369 establishment in life."
7370
7371 "Me, brother! what do you mean?"
7372
7373 "He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am convinced of it. What
7374 is the amount of his fortune?"
7375
7376 "I believe about two thousand a year."
7377
7378 "Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself up to a pitch of
7379 enthusiastic generosity, he added, "Elinor, I wish with all my heart it
7380 were TWICE as much, for your sake."
7381
7382 "Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am very sure that
7383 Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish of marrying ME."
7384
7385 "You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken. A very little
7386 trouble on your side secures him. Perhaps just at present he may be
7387 undecided; the smallness of your fortune may make him hang back; his
7388 friends may all advise him against it. But some of those little
7389 attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily give will fix
7390 him, in spite of himself. And there can be no reason why you should
7391 not try for him. It is not to be supposed that any prior attachment on
7392 your side--in short, you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is
7393 quite out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--you have
7394 too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon must be the man;
7395 and no civility shall be wanting on my part to make him pleased with
7396 you and your family. It is a match that must give universal
7397 satisfaction. In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his
7398 voice to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome to ALL
7399 PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added, "That is, I mean to
7400 say--your friends are all truly anxious to see you well settled; Fanny
7401 particularly, for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure
7402 you. And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman, I am
7403 sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much the other day."
7404
7405 Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
7406
7407 "It would be something remarkable, now," he continued, "something
7408 droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I a sister settling at the
7409 same time. And yet it is not very unlikely."
7410
7411 "Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution, "going to be
7412 married?"
7413
7414 "It is not actually settled, but there is such a thing in agitation.
7415 He has a most excellent mother. Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost
7416 liberality, will come forward, and settle on him a thousand a year, if
7417 the match takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
7418 of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds. A very desirable
7419 connection on both sides, and I have not a doubt of its taking place in
7420 time. A thousand a-year is a great deal for a mother to give away, to
7421 make over for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give you
7422 another instance of her liberality:--The other day, as soon as we came
7423 to town, aware that money could not be very plenty with us just now,
7424 she put bank-notes into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred
7425 pounds. And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
7426 expense while we are here."
7427
7428 He paused for her assent and compassion; and she forced herself to say,
7429
7430 "Your expenses both in town and country must certainly be considerable;
7431 but your income is a large one."
7432
7433 "Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose. I do not mean to
7434 complain, however; it is undoubtedly a comfortable one, and I hope will
7435 in time be better. The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
7436 is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little purchase within
7437 this half year; East Kingham Farm, you must remember the place, where
7438 old Gibson used to live. The land was so very desirable for me in
7439 every respect, so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
7440 my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my conscience to
7441 let it fall into any other hands. A man must pay for his convenience;
7442 and it HAS cost me a vast deal of money."
7443
7444 "More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
7445
7446 "Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again, the next day, for
7447 more than I gave: but, with regard to the purchase-money, I might have
7448 been very unfortunate indeed; for the stocks were at that time so low,
7449 that if I had not happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's
7450 hands, I must have sold out to very great loss."
7451
7452 Elinor could only smile.
7453
7454 "Other great and inevitable expenses too we have had on first coming to
7455 Norland. Our respected father, as you well know, bequeathed all the
7456 Stanhill effects that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
7457 to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his doing so; he had an
7458 undoubted right to dispose of his own property as he chose, but, in
7459 consequence of it, we have been obliged to make large purchases of
7460 linen, china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away. You may
7461 guess, after all these expenses, how very far we must be from being
7462 rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's kindness is."
7463
7464 "Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality, I hope you
7465 may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
7466
7467 "Another year or two may do much towards it," he gravely replied; "but
7468 however there is still a great deal to be done. There is not a stone
7469 laid of Fanny's green-house, and nothing but the plan of the
7470 flower-garden marked out."
7471
7472 "Where is the green-house to be?"
7473
7474 "Upon the knoll behind the house. The old walnut trees are all come
7475 down to make room for it. It will be a very fine object from many
7476 parts of the park, and the flower-garden will slope down just before
7477 it, and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old thorns
7478 that grew in patches over the brow."
7479
7480 Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself; and was very
7481 thankful that Marianne was not present, to share the provocation.
7482
7483 Having now said enough to make his poverty clear, and to do away the
7484 necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings for each of his sisters, in his
7485 next visit at Gray's his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began
7486 to congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
7487
7488 "She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house, her style of
7489 living, all bespeak an exceeding good income; and it is an acquaintance
7490 that has not only been of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may
7491 prove materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is certainly a
7492 vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it speaks altogether so great a
7493 regard for you, that in all probability when she dies you will not be
7494 forgotten.-- She must have a great deal to leave."
7495
7496 "Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has only her
7497 jointure, which will descend to her children."
7498
7499 "But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to her income. Few
7500 people of common prudence will do THAT; and whatever she saves, she
7501 will be able to dispose of."
7502
7503 "And do you not think it more likely that she should leave it to her
7504 daughters, than to us?"
7505
7506 "Her daughters are both exceedingly well married, and therefore I
7507 cannot perceive the necessity of her remembering them farther.
7508 Whereas, in my opinion, by her taking so much notice of you, and
7509 treating you in this kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on
7510 her future consideration, which a conscientious woman would not
7511 disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour; and she can
7512 hardly do all this, without being aware of the expectation it raises."
7513
7514 "But she raises none in those most concerned. Indeed, brother, your
7515 anxiety for our welfare and prosperity carries you too far."
7516
7517 "Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself, "people have
7518 little, have very little in their power. But, my dear Elinor, what is
7519 the matter with Marianne?-- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour,
7520 and is grown quite thin. Is she ill?"
7521
7522 "She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint on her for several
7523 weeks."
7524
7525 "I am sorry for that. At her time of life, any thing of an illness
7526 destroys the bloom for ever! Hers has been a very short one! She was
7527 as handsome a girl last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to
7528 attract the man. There was something in her style of beauty, to please
7529 them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say that she would marry
7530 sooner and better than you did; not but what she is exceedingly fond of
7531 YOU, but so it happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
7532 I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth more than five
7533 or six hundred a-year, at the utmost, and I am very much deceived if
7534 YOU do not do better. Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire;
7535 but, my dear Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
7536 and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself among the
7537 earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
7538
7539 Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that there was no
7540 likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon; but it was an expectation
7541 of too much pleasure to himself to be relinquished, and he was really
7542 resolved on seeking an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the
7543 marriage by every possible attention. He had just compunction enough
7544 for having done nothing for his sisters himself, to be exceedingly
7545 anxious that everybody else should do a great deal; and an offer from
7546 Colonel Brandon, or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
7547 of atoning for his own neglect.
7548
7549 They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton at home, and Sir John
7550 came in before their visit ended. Abundance of civilities passed on
7551 all sides. Sir John was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood
7552 did not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him down as a very
7553 good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton saw enough of fashion in his
7554 appearance to think his acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood
7555 went away delighted with both.
7556
7557 "I shall have a charming account to carry to Fanny," said he, as he
7558 walked back with his sister. "Lady Middleton is really a most elegant
7559 woman! Such a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know. And Mrs.
7560 Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman, though not so elegant
7561 as her daughter. Your sister need not have any scruple even of
7562 visiting HER, which, to say the truth, has been a little the case, and
7563 very naturally; for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a
7564 man who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and Mrs. Ferrars
7565 were both strongly prepossessed, that neither she nor her daughters
7566 were such kind of women as Fanny would like to associate with. But now
7567 I can carry her a most satisfactory account of both."
7568
7569
7570
7571 CHAPTER 34
7572
7573
7574 Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her husband's judgment,
7575 that she waited the very next day both on Mrs. Jennings and her
7576 daughter; and her confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
7577 even the woman with whom her sisters were staying, by no means unworthy
7578 her notice; and as for Lady Middleton, she found her one of the most
7579 charming women in the world!
7580
7581 Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood. There was a
7582 kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides, which mutually
7583 attracted them; and they sympathised with each other in an insipid
7584 propriety of demeanor, and a general want of understanding.
7585
7586 The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John Dashwood to the
7587 good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit the fancy of Mrs. Jennings,
7588 and to HER she appeared nothing more than a little proud-looking woman
7589 of uncordial address, who met her husband's sisters without any
7590 affection, and almost without having anything to say to them; for of
7591 the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street, she sat at least
7592 seven minutes and a half in silence.
7593
7594 Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did not chuse to ask,
7595 whether Edward was then in town; but nothing would have induced Fanny
7596 voluntarily to mention his name before her, till able to tell her that
7597 his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on, or till her husband's
7598 expectations on Colonel Brandon were answered; because she believed
7599 them still so very much attached to each other, that they could not be
7600 too sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion. The
7601 intelligence however, which SHE would not give, soon flowed from
7602 another quarter. Lucy came very shortly to claim Elinor's compassion
7603 on being unable to see Edward, though he had arrived in town with Mr.
7604 and Mrs. Dashwood. He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
7605 of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet, was not to be
7606 told, they could do nothing at present but write.
7607
7608 Edward assured them himself of his being in town, within a very short
7609 time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street. Twice was his card found on
7610 the table, when they returned from their morning's engagements. Elinor
7611 was pleased that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
7612 missed him.
7613
7614 The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted with the Middletons, that,
7615 though not much in the habit of giving anything, they determined to
7616 give them--a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began, invited
7617 them to dine in Harley Street, where they had taken a very good house
7618 for three months. Their sisters and Mrs. Jennings were invited
7619 likewise, and John Dashwood was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who,
7620 always glad to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
7621 civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure. They were to
7622 meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn whether her sons were to
7623 be of the party. The expectation of seeing HER, however, was enough to
7624 make her interested in the engagement; for though she could now meet
7625 Edward's mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised to
7626 attend such an introduction, though she could now see her with perfect
7627 indifference as to her opinion of herself, her desire of being in
7628 company with Mrs. Ferrars, her curiosity to know what she was like, was
7629 as lively as ever.
7630
7631 The interest with which she thus anticipated the party, was soon
7632 afterwards increased, more powerfully than pleasantly, by her hearing
7633 that the Miss Steeles were also to be at it.
7634
7635 So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton, so agreeable
7636 had their assiduities made them to her, that though Lucy was certainly
7637 not so elegant, and her sister not even genteel, she was as ready as
7638 Sir John to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street; and it
7639 happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss Steeles, as soon as
7640 the Dashwoods' invitation was known, that their visit should begin a
7641 few days before the party took place.
7642
7643 Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood, as the nieces of the
7644 gentleman who for many years had had the care of her brother, might not
7645 have done much, however, towards procuring them seats at her table; but
7646 as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy, who had long
7647 wanted to be personally known to the family, to have a nearer view of
7648 their characters and her own difficulties, and to have an opportunity
7649 of endeavouring to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
7650 than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
7651
7652 On Elinor its effect was very different. She began immediately to
7653 determine, that Edward who lived with his mother, must be asked as his
7654 mother was, to a party given by his sister; and to see him for the
7655 first time, after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
7656 knew how she could bear it!
7657
7658 These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded entirely on reason, and
7659 certainly not at all on truth. They were relieved however, not by her
7660 own recollection, but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to
7661 be inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her that Edward
7662 certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday, and even hoped to
7663 be carrying the pain still farther by persuading her that he was kept
7664 away by the extreme affection for herself, which he could not conceal
7665 when they were together.
7666
7667 The important Tuesday came that was to introduce the two young ladies
7668 to this formidable mother-in-law.
7669
7670 "Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they walked up the stairs
7671 together--for the Middletons arrived so directly after Mrs. Jennings,
7672 that they all followed the servant at the same time--"There is nobody
7673 here but you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
7674 Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all my
7675 happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
7676
7677 Elinor could have given her immediate relief by suggesting the
7678 possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother, rather than her own,
7679 whom they were about to behold; but instead of doing that, she assured
7680 her, and with great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
7681 amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself, hoped at
7682 least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
7683
7684 Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright, even to formality, in
7685 her figure, and serious, even to sourness, in her aspect. Her
7686 complexion was sallow; and her features small, without beauty, and
7687 naturally without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow had
7688 rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity, by giving it
7689 the strong characters of pride and ill nature. She was not a woman of
7690 many words; for, unlike people in general, she proportioned them to the
7691 number of her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her, not
7692 one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed with the spirited
7693 determination of disliking her at all events.
7694
7695 Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.-- A few months
7696 ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it was not in Mrs. Ferrars'
7697 power to distress her by it now;--and the difference of her manners to
7698 the Miss Steeles, a difference which seemed purposely made to humble
7699 her more, only amused her. She could not but smile to see the
7700 graciousness of both mother and daughter towards the very person-- for
7701 Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others, had they known
7702 as much as she did, they would have been most anxious to mortify; while
7703 she herself, who had comparatively no power to wound them, sat
7704 pointedly slighted by both. But while she smiled at a graciousness so
7705 misapplied, she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from which
7706 it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions with which the Miss
7707 Steeles courted its continuance, without thoroughly despising them all
7708 four.
7709
7710 Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably distinguished; and Miss
7711 Steele wanted only to be teazed about Dr. Davies to be perfectly happy.
7712
7713 The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous, and every thing
7714 bespoke the Mistress's inclination for show, and the Master's ability
7715 to support it. In spite of the improvements and additions which were
7716 making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner having once
7717 been within some thousand pounds of being obliged to sell out at a
7718 loss, nothing gave any symptom of that indigence which he had tried to
7719 infer from it;--no poverty of any kind, except of conversation,
7720 appeared--but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
7721 had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing, and his wife
7722 had still less. But there was no peculiar disgrace in this; for it was
7723 very much the case with the chief of their visitors, who almost all
7724 laboured under one or other of these disqualifications for being
7725 agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want of
7726 elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
7727
7728 When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room after dinner, this poverty
7729 was particularly evident, for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse
7730 with some variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land, and
7731 breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one subject only engaged
7732 the ladies till coffee came in, which was the comparative heights of
7733 Harry Dashwood, and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were
7734 nearly of the same age.
7735
7736 Had both the children been there, the affair might have been determined
7737 too easily by measuring them at once; but as Harry only was present, it
7738 was all conjectural assertion on both sides; and every body had a right
7739 to be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it over and over
7740 again as often as they liked.
7741
7742 The parties stood thus:
7743
7744 The two mothers, though each really convinced that her own son was the
7745 tallest, politely decided in favour of the other.
7746
7747 The two grandmothers, with not less partiality, but more sincerity,
7748 were equally earnest in support of their own descendant.
7749
7750 Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent than the other,
7751 thought the boys were both remarkably tall for their age, and could not
7752 conceive that there could be the smallest difference in the world
7753 between them; and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it, as
7754 fast as she could, in favour of each.
7755
7756 Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on William's side, by which
7757 she offended Mrs. Ferrars and Fanny still more, did not see the
7758 necessity of enforcing it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when
7759 called on for hers, offended them all, by declaring that she had no
7760 opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
7761
7762 Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted a very pretty pair
7763 of screens for her sister-in-law, which being now just mounted and
7764 brought home, ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
7765 catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following the other gentlemen
7766 into the room, were officiously handed by him to Colonel Brandon for
7767 his admiration.
7768
7769 "These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you, as a man of
7770 taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them. I do not know whether
7771 you have ever happened to see any of her performances before, but she
7772 is in general reckoned to draw extremely well."
7773
7774 The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions to connoisseurship,
7775 warmly admired the screens, as he would have done any thing painted by
7776 Miss Dashwood; and on the curiosity of the others being of course
7777 excited, they were handed round for general inspection. Mrs. Ferrars,
7778 not aware of their being Elinor's work, particularly requested to look
7779 at them; and after they had received gratifying testimony of Lady
7780 Middletons's approbation, Fanny presented them to her mother,
7781 considerately informing her, at the same time, that they were done by
7782 Miss Dashwood.
7783
7784 "Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without regarding them at
7785 all, returned them to her daughter.
7786
7787 Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother had been quite rude
7788 enough,--for, colouring a little, she immediately said,
7789
7790 "They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again, the dread of
7791 having been too civil, too encouraging herself, probably came over her,
7792 for she presently added,
7793
7794 "Do you not think they are something in Miss Morton's style of
7795 painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most delightfully!--How beautifully
7796 her last landscape is done!"
7797
7798 "Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
7799
7800 Marianne could not bear this.--She was already greatly displeased with
7801 Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed praise of another, at Elinor's
7802 expense, though she had not any notion of what was principally meant by
7803 it, provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
7804
7805 "This is admiration of a very particular kind!--what is Miss Morton to
7806 us?--who knows, or who cares, for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think
7807 and speak."
7808
7809 And so saying, she took the screens out of her sister-in-law's hands,
7810 to admire them herself as they ought to be admired.
7811
7812 Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing herself up more
7813 stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort this bitter philippic, "Miss
7814 Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
7815
7816 Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was all in a fright at his
7817 sister's audacity. Elinor was much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than
7818 she had been by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
7819 were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only what was amiable
7820 in it, the affectionate heart which could not bear to see a sister
7821 slighted in the smallest point.
7822
7823 Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold insolence of Mrs.
7824 Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister, seemed, to her, to foretell
7825 such difficulties and distresses to Elinor, as her own wounded heart
7826 taught her to think of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
7827 affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment, to her sister's
7828 chair, and putting one arm round her neck, and one cheek close to hers,
7829 said in a low, but eager, voice,
7830
7831 "Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them make YOU unhappy."
7832
7833 She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome, and hiding her
7834 face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst into tears. Every body's
7835 attention was called, and almost every body was concerned.--Colonel
7836 Brandon rose up and went to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs.
7837 Jennings, with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave her
7838 her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged against the author
7839 of this nervous distress, that he instantly changed his seat to one
7840 close by Lucy Steele, and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of
7841 the whole shocking affair.
7842
7843 In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered enough to put an end
7844 to the bustle, and sit down among the rest; though her spirits retained
7845 the impression of what had passed, the whole evening.
7846
7847 "Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon, in a low voice,
7848 as soon as he could secure his attention,-- "She has not such good
7849 health as her sister,--she is very nervous,--she has not Elinor's
7850 constitution;--and one must allow that there is something very trying
7851 to a young woman who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal
7852 attractions. You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS
7853 remarkably handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
7854 Now you see it is all gone."
7855
7856
7857
7858 CHAPTER 35
7859
7860
7861 Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.-- She had found
7862 in her every thing that could tend to make a farther connection between
7863 the families undesirable.-- She had seen enough of her pride, her
7864 meanness, and her determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend
7865 all the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement, and
7866 retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been otherwise
7867 free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful for her OWN sake,
7868 that one greater obstacle preserved her from suffering under any other
7869 of Mrs. Ferrars's creation, preserved her from all dependence upon her
7870 caprice, or any solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she
7871 did not bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered to
7872 Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable, she OUGHT to
7873 have rejoiced.
7874
7875 She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much elevated by the
7876 civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest and her vanity should so
7877 very much blind her as to make the attention which seemed only paid her
7878 because she was NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
7879 her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her, because
7880 her real situation was unknown. But that it was so, had not only been
7881 declared by Lucy's eyes at the time, but was declared over again the
7882 next morning more openly, for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton
7883 set her down in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
7884 to tell her how happy she was.
7885
7886 The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from Mrs. Palmer soon
7887 after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
7888
7889 "My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were by themselves, "I
7890 come to talk to you of my happiness. Could anything be so flattering
7891 as Mrs. Ferrars's way of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable
7892 as she was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--but
7893 the very moment I was introduced, there was such an affability in her
7894 behaviour as really should seem to say, she had quite took a fancy to
7895 me. Now was not it so?-- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck
7896 with it?"
7897
7898 "She was certainly very civil to you."
7899
7900 "Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?-- I saw a vast deal
7901 more. Such kindness as fell to the share of nobody but me!--No pride,
7902 no hauteur, and your sister just the same--all sweetness and
7903 affability!"
7904
7905 Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still pressed her to
7906 own that she had reason for her happiness; and Elinor was obliged to go
7907 on.--
7908
7909 "Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement," said she, "nothing
7910 could be more flattering than their treatment of you;--but as that was
7911 not the case"--
7912
7913 "I guessed you would say so,"--replied Lucy quickly--"but there was no
7914 reason in the world why Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did
7915 not, and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me out of my
7916 satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well, and there will be no
7917 difficulties at all, to what I used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a
7918 charming woman, and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
7919 indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable Mrs.
7920 Dashwood was!"
7921
7922 To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not attempt any.
7923
7924 "Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you don't speak;--sure you
7925 an't well."
7926
7927 "I never was in better health."
7928
7929 "I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did not look it. I
7930 should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have been the greatest
7931 comfort to me in the world!--Heaven knows what I should have done
7932 without your friendship."--
7933
7934 Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting her own success.
7935 But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she directly replied,
7936
7937 "Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard for me, and next to
7938 Edward's love, it is the greatest comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But
7939 now there is one good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty
7940 often, for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood, so we shall
7941 be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say, and Edward spends half his
7942 time with his sister--besides, Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will
7943 visit now;--and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
7944 more than once, they should always be glad to see me.-- They are such
7945 charming women!--I am sure if ever you tell your sister what I think of
7946 her, you cannot speak too high."
7947
7948 But Elinor would not give her any encouragement to hope that she SHOULD
7949 tell her sister. Lucy continued.
7950
7951 "I am sure I should have seen it in a moment, if Mrs. Ferrars had took
7952 a dislike to me. If she had only made me a formal courtesy, for
7953 instance, without saying a word, and never after had took any notice of
7954 me, and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know what I mean--if
7955 I had been treated in that forbidding sort of way, I should have gave
7956 it all up in despair. I could not have stood it. For where she DOES
7957 dislike, I know it is most violent."
7958
7959 Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this civil triumph, by
7960 the door's being thrown open, the servant's announcing Mr. Ferrars, and
7961 Edward's immediately walking in.
7962
7963 It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each shewed that
7964 it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish; and Edward seemed to
7965 have as great an inclination to walk out of the room again, as to
7966 advance farther into it. The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest
7967 form, which they would each have been most anxious to avoid, had fallen
7968 on them.--They were not only all three together, but were together
7969 without the relief of any other person. The ladies recovered
7970 themselves first. It was not Lucy's business to put herself forward,
7971 and the appearance of secrecy must still be kept up. She could
7972 therefore only LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
7973 said no more.
7974
7975 But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she, for his sake and her
7976 own, to do it well, that she forced herself, after a moment's
7977 recollection, to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost
7978 easy, and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
7979 improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy, nor the
7980 consciousness of some injustice towards herself, to deter her from
7981 saying that she was happy to see him, and that she had very much
7982 regretted being from home, when he called before in Berkeley Street.
7983 She would not be frightened from paying him those attentions which, as
7984 a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the observant eyes of
7985 Lucy, though she soon perceived them to be narrowly watching her.
7986
7987 Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he had courage enough
7988 to sit down; but his embarrassment still exceeded that of the ladies in
7989 a proportion, which the case rendered reasonable, though his sex might
7990 make it rare; for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
7991 could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
7992
7993 Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined to make no
7994 contribution to the comfort of the others, and would not say a word;
7995 and almost every thing that WAS said, proceeded from Elinor, who was
7996 obliged to volunteer all the information about her mother's health,
7997 their coming to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
7998 but never did.
7999
8000 Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon afterwards felt herself
8001 so heroically disposed as to determine, under pretence of fetching
8002 Marianne, to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it, and
8003 THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away several minutes on
8004 the landing-place, with the most high-minded fortitude, before she went
8005 to her sister. When that was once done, however, it was time for the
8006 raptures of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into the
8007 drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him was like every
8008 other of her feelings, strong in itself, and strongly spoken. She met
8009 him with a hand that would be taken, and a voice that expressed the
8010 affection of a sister.
8011
8012 "Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great happiness!--This
8013 would almost make amends for every thing!"
8014
8015 Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved, but before such
8016 witnesses he dared not say half what he really felt. Again they all
8017 sat down, and for a moment or two all were silent; while Marianne was
8018 looking with the most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and
8019 sometimes at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each other
8020 should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence. Edward was the first
8021 to speak, and it was to notice Marianne's altered looks, and express
8022 his fear of her not finding London agree with her.
8023
8024 "Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited earnestness, though
8025 her eyes were filled with tears as she spoke, "don't think of MY
8026 health. Elinor is well, you see. That must be enough for us both."
8027
8028 This remark was not calculated to make Edward or Elinor more easy, nor
8029 to conciliate the good will of Lucy, who looked up at Marianne with no
8030 very benignant expression.
8031
8032 "Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say any thing that might
8033 introduce another subject.
8034
8035 "Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it, but I have found none.
8036 The sight of you, Edward, is the only comfort it has afforded; and
8037 thank Heaven! you are what you always were!"
8038
8039 She paused--no one spoke.
8040
8041 "I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must employ Edward to take
8042 care of us in our return to Barton. In a week or two, I suppose, we
8043 shall be going; and, I trust, Edward will not be very unwilling to
8044 accept the charge."
8045
8046 Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was, nobody knew, not even
8047 himself. But Marianne, who saw his agitation, and could easily trace
8048 it to whatever cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied, and
8049 soon talked of something else.
8050
8051 "We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street yesterday! So dull, so
8052 wretchedly dull!--But I have much to say to you on that head, which
8053 cannot be said now."
8054
8055 And with this admirable discretion did she defer the assurance of her
8056 finding their mutual relatives more disagreeable than ever, and of her
8057 being particularly disgusted with his mother, till they were more in
8058 private.
8059
8060 "But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you not come?"
8061
8062 "I was engaged elsewhere."
8063
8064 "Engaged! But what was that, when such friends were to be met?"
8065
8066 "Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take some revenge on
8067 her, "you think young men never stand upon engagements, if they have no
8068 mind to keep them, little as well as great."
8069
8070 Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely insensible of the
8071 sting; for she calmly replied,
8072
8073 "Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very sure that
8074 conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street. And I really believe
8075 he HAS the most delicate conscience in the world; the most scrupulous
8076 in performing every engagement, however minute, and however it may make
8077 against his interest or pleasure. He is the most fearful of giving
8078 pain, of wounding expectation, and the most incapable of being selfish,
8079 of any body I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it. What!
8080 are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you must be no friend of
8081 mine; for those who will accept of my love and esteem, must submit to
8082 my open commendation."
8083
8084 The nature of her commendation, in the present case, however, happened
8085 to be particularly ill-suited to the feelings of two thirds of her
8086 auditors, and was so very unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon
8087 got up to go away.
8088
8089 "Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward, this must not be."
8090
8091 And drawing him a little aside, she whispered her persuasion that Lucy
8092 could not stay much longer. But even this encouragement failed, for he
8093 would go; and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
8094 two hours, soon afterwards went away.
8095
8096 "What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne, on her leaving them.
8097 "Could not she see that we wanted her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
8098
8099 "Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been the longest known
8100 to him of any. It is but natural that he should like to see her as
8101 well as ourselves."
8102
8103 Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know, Elinor, that this
8104 is a kind of talking which I cannot bear. If you only hope to have
8105 your assertion contradicted, as I must suppose to be the case, you
8106 ought to recollect that I am the last person in the world to do it. I
8107 cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are not really
8108 wanted."
8109
8110 She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow her to say more,
8111 for bound as she was by her promise of secrecy to Lucy, she could give
8112 no information that would convince Marianne; and painful as the
8113 consequences of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
8114 obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was that Edward
8115 would not often expose her or himself to the distress of hearing
8116 Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the repetition of any other part of
8117 the pain that had attended their recent meeting--and this she had every
8118 reason to expect.
8119
8120
8121
8122 CHAPTER 36
8123
8124
8125 Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers announced to the
8126 world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer, Esq. was safely delivered of a
8127 son and heir; a very interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least
8128 to all those intimate connections who knew it before.
8129
8130 This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness, produced a
8131 temporary alteration in the disposal of her time, and influenced, in a
8132 like degree, the engagements of her young friends; for as she wished to
8133 be as much as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning as
8134 soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late in the evening;
8135 and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular request of the Middletons,
8136 spent the whole of every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
8137 they would much rather have remained, at least all the morning, in Mrs.
8138 Jennings's house; but it was not a thing to be urged against the wishes
8139 of everybody. Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton and
8140 the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact was as little
8141 valued, as it was professedly sought.
8142
8143 They had too much sense to be desirable companions to the former; and
8144 by the latter they were considered with a jealous eye, as intruding on
8145 THEIR ground, and sharing the kindness which they wanted to monopolize.
8146 Though nothing could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
8147 Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all. Because they
8148 neither flattered herself nor her children, she could not believe them
8149 good-natured; and because they were fond of reading, she fancied them
8150 satirical: perhaps without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
8151 but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use, and easily
8152 given.
8153
8154 Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy. It checked the
8155 idleness of one, and the business of the other. Lady Middleton was
8156 ashamed of doing nothing before them, and the flattery which Lucy was
8157 proud to think of and administer at other times, she feared they would
8158 despise her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed of the
8159 three, by their presence; and it was in their power to reconcile her to
8160 it entirely. Would either of them only have given her a full and
8161 minute account of the whole affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby,
8162 she would have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice of the
8163 best place by the fire after dinner, which their arrival occasioned.
8164 But this conciliation was not granted; for though she often threw out
8165 expressions of pity for her sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt
8166 a reflection on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect was
8167 produced, but a look of indifference from the former, or of disgust in
8168 the latter. An effort even yet lighter might have made her their
8169 friend. Would they only have laughed at her about the Doctor! But so
8170 little were they, anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her, that
8171 if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole day without
8172 hearing any other raillery on the subject, than what she was kind
8173 enough to bestow on herself.
8174
8175 All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so totally
8176 unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought it a delightful thing
8177 for the girls to be together; and generally congratulated her young
8178 friends every night, on having escaped the company of a stupid old
8179 woman so long. She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes at
8180 her own house; but wherever it was, she always came in excellent
8181 spirits, full of delight and importance, attributing Charlotte's well
8182 doing to her own care, and ready to give so exact, so minute a detail
8183 of her situation, as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
8184 One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her daily complaint.
8185 Mr. Palmer maintained the common, but unfatherly opinion among his sex,
8186 of all infants being alike; and though she could plainly perceive, at
8187 different times, the most striking resemblance between this baby and
8188 every one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing his
8189 father of it; no persuading him to believe that it was not exactly like
8190 every other baby of the same age; nor could he even be brought to
8191 acknowledge the simple proposition of its being the finest child in the
8192 world.
8193
8194 I come now to the relation of a misfortune, which about this time
8195 befell Mrs. John Dashwood. It so happened that while her two sisters
8196 with Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street, another
8197 of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance in itself not
8198 apparently likely to produce evil to her. But while the imaginations
8199 of other people will carry them away to form wrong judgments of our
8200 conduct, and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
8201 must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance. In the present
8202 instance, this last-arrived lady allowed her fancy to so far outrun
8203 truth and probability, that on merely hearing the name of the Miss
8204 Dashwoods, and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters, she
8205 immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street; and this
8206 misconstruction produced within a day or two afterwards, cards of
8207 invitation for them as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
8208 musical party at her house. The consequence of which was, that Mrs.
8209 John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only to the exceedingly great
8210 inconvenience of sending her carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what
8211 was still worse, must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
8212 to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they might not
8213 expect to go out with her a second time? The power of disappointing
8214 them, it was true, must always be hers. But that was not enough; for
8215 when people are determined on a mode of conduct which they know to be
8216 wrong, they feel injured by the expectation of any thing better from
8217 them.
8218
8219 Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much into the habit of
8220 going out every day, that it was become a matter of indifference to
8221 her, whether she went or not: and she prepared quietly and mechanically
8222 for every evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
8223 amusement from any, and very often without knowing, till the last
8224 moment, where it was to take her.
8225
8226 To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly indifferent, as
8227 not to bestow half the consideration on it, during the whole of her
8228 toilet, which it received from Miss Steele in the first five minutes of
8229 their being together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
8230 observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing, and asked every
8231 thing; was never easy till she knew the price of every part of
8232 Marianne's dress; could have guessed the number of her gowns altogether
8233 with better judgment than Marianne herself, and was not without hopes
8234 of finding out before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
8235 and how much she had every year to spend upon herself. The
8236 impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover, was generally
8237 concluded with a compliment, which though meant as its douceur, was
8238 considered by Marianne as the greatest impertinence of all; for after
8239 undergoing an examination into the value and make of her gown, the
8240 colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair, she was almost
8241 sure of being told that upon "her word she looked vastly smart, and she
8242 dared to say she would make a great many conquests."
8243
8244 With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed on the present
8245 occasion, to her brother's carriage; which they were ready to enter
8246 five minutes after it stopped at the door, a punctuality not very
8247 agreeable to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house of
8248 her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay on their part
8249 that might inconvenience either herself or her coachman.
8250
8251 The events of this evening were not very remarkable. The party, like
8252 other musical parties, comprehended a great many people who had real
8253 taste for the performance, and a great many more who had none at all;
8254 and the performers themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
8255 and that of their immediate friends, the first private performers in
8256 England.
8257
8258 As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so, she made no
8259 scruple of turning her eyes from the grand pianoforte, whenever it
8260 suited her, and unrestrained even by the presence of a harp, and
8261 violoncello, would fix them at pleasure on any other object in the
8262 room. In one of these excursive glances she perceived among a group of
8263 young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture on toothpick-cases
8264 at Gray's. She perceived him soon afterwards looking at herself, and
8265 speaking familiarly to her brother; and had just determined to find out
8266 his name from the latter, when they both came towards her, and Mr.
8267 Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
8268
8269 He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted his head into a bow
8270 which assured her as plainly as words could have done, that he was
8271 exactly the coxcomb she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy
8272 had it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended less on his
8273 own merit, than on the merit of his nearest relations! For then his
8274 brother's bow must have given the finishing stroke to what the
8275 ill-humour of his mother and sister would have begun. But while she
8276 wondered at the difference of the two young men, she did not find that
8277 the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out of all charity with
8278 the modesty and worth of the other. Why they WERE different, Robert
8279 exclaimed to her himself in the course of a quarter of an hour's
8280 conversation; for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
8281 GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing in proper
8282 society, he candidly and generously attributed it much less to any
8283 natural deficiency, than to the misfortune of a private education;
8284 while he himself, though probably without any particular, any material
8285 superiority by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
8286 was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
8287
8288 "Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more; and so I often
8289 tell my mother, when she is grieving about it. 'My dear Madam,' I
8290 always say to her, 'you must make yourself easy. The evil is now
8291 irremediable, and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would you
8292 be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your own judgment, to
8293 place Edward under private tuition, at the most critical time of his
8294 life? If you had only sent him to Westminster as well as myself,
8295 instead of sending him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been
8296 prevented.' This is the way in which I always consider the matter, and
8297 my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
8298
8299 Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because, whatever might be her
8300 general estimation of the advantage of a public school, she could not
8301 think of Edward's abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
8302
8303 "You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his next observation, "in a
8304 cottage near Dawlish."
8305
8306 Elinor set him right as to its situation; and it seemed rather
8307 surprising to him that anybody could live in Devonshire, without living
8308 near Dawlish. He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
8309 species of house.
8310
8311 "For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond of a cottage; there
8312 is always so much comfort, so much elegance about them. And I protest,
8313 if I had any money to spare, I should buy a little land and build one
8314 myself, within a short distance of London, where I might drive myself
8315 down at any time, and collect a few friends about me, and be happy. I
8316 advise every body who is going to build, to build a cottage. My friend
8317 Lord Courtland came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
8318 and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's. I was to decide
8319 on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,' said I, immediately throwing
8320 them all into the fire, 'do not adopt either of them, but by all means
8321 build a cottage.' And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
8322
8323 "Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations, no space in a
8324 cottage; but this is all a mistake. I was last month at my friend
8325 Elliott's, near Dartford. Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But
8326 how can it be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it is
8327 to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage that will hold ten
8328 couple, and where can the supper be?' I immediately saw that there
8329 could be no difficulty in it, so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not
8330 be uneasy. The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
8331 card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library may be open
8332 for tea and other refreshments; and let the supper be set out in the
8333 saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted with the thought. We measured the
8334 dining-room, and found it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the
8335 affair was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact, you
8336 see, if people do but know how to set about it, every comfort may be as
8337 well enjoyed in a cottage as in the most spacious dwelling."
8338
8339 Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think he deserved the
8340 compliment of rational opposition.
8341
8342 As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his eldest sister,
8343 his mind was equally at liberty to fix on any thing else; and a thought
8344 struck him during the evening, which he communicated to his wife, for
8345 her approbation, when they got home. The consideration of Mrs.
8346 Dennison's mistake, in supposing his sisters their guests, had
8347 suggested the propriety of their being really invited to become such,
8348 while Mrs. Jennings's engagements kept her from home. The expense would
8349 be nothing, the inconvenience not more; and it was altogether an
8350 attention which the delicacy of his conscience pointed out to be
8351 requisite to its complete enfranchisement from his promise to his
8352 father. Fanny was startled at the proposal.
8353
8354 "I do not see how it can be done," said she, "without affronting Lady
8355 Middleton, for they spend every day with her; otherwise I should be
8356 exceedingly glad to do it. You know I am always ready to pay them any
8357 attention in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews. But
8358 they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them away from her?"
8359
8360 Her husband, but with great humility, did not see the force of her
8361 objection. "They had already spent a week in this manner in Conduit
8362 Street, and Lady Middleton could not be displeased at their giving the
8363 same number of days to such near relations."
8364
8365 Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
8366
8367 "My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it was in my power.
8368 But I had just settled within myself to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a
8369 few days with us. They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and
8370 I think the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very well
8371 by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year, you know; but the
8372 Miss Steeles may not be in town any more. I am sure you will like
8373 them; indeed, you DO like them, you know, very much already, and so
8374 does my mother; and they are such favourites with Harry!"
8375
8376 Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity of inviting the Miss
8377 Steeles immediately, and his conscience was pacified by the resolution
8378 of inviting his sisters another year; at the same time, however, slyly
8379 suspecting that another year would make the invitation needless, by
8380 bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife, and Marianne as
8381 THEIR visitor.
8382
8383 Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready wit that had
8384 procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy, to request her company and
8385 her sister's, for some days, in Harley Street, as soon as Lady
8386 Middleton could spare them. This was enough to make Lucy really and
8387 reasonably happy. Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her,
8388 herself; cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views! Such
8389 an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was, above all
8390 things, the most material to her interest, and such an invitation the
8391 most gratifying to her feelings! It was an advantage that could not be
8392 too gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of; and the
8393 visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had any precise limits,
8394 was instantly discovered to have been always meant to end in two days'
8395 time.
8396
8397 When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten minutes after
8398 its arrival, it gave her, for the first time, some share in the
8399 expectations of Lucy; for such a mark of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed
8400 on so short an acquaintance, seemed to declare that the good-will
8401 towards her arose from something more than merely malice against
8402 herself; and might be brought, by time and address, to do every thing
8403 that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already subdued the pride of Lady
8404 Middleton, and made an entry into the close heart of Mrs. John
8405 Dashwood; and these were effects that laid open the probability of
8406 greater.
8407
8408 The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all that reached Elinor
8409 of their influence there, strengthened her expectation of the event.
8410 Sir John, who called on them more than once, brought home such accounts
8411 of the favour they were in, as must be universally striking. Mrs.
8412 Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any young women in her
8413 life, as she was with them; had given each of them a needle book made
8414 by some emigrant; called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
8415 whether she should ever be able to part with them.
8416
8417
8418
8419
8420
8421 [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume II ended.]
8422
8423
8424
8425
8426 CHAPTER 37
8427
8428
8429 Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight, that her mother felt
8430 it no longer necessary to give up the whole of her time to her; and,
8431 contenting herself with visiting her once or twice a day, returned from
8432 that period to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found the
8433 Miss Dashwoods very ready to resume their former share.
8434
8435 About the third or fourth morning after their being thus resettled in
8436 Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings, on returning from her ordinary visit to
8437 Mrs. Palmer, entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting by
8438 herself, with an air of such hurrying importance as prepared her to
8439 hear something wonderful; and giving her time only to form that idea,
8440 began directly to justify it, by saying,
8441
8442 "Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
8443
8444 "No, ma'am. What is it?"
8445
8446 "Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.-- When I got to Mr.
8447 Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite in a fuss about the child. She was
8448 sure it was very ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
8449 So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,' says I, 'it is
8450 nothing in the world, but the red gum--' and nurse said just the same.
8451 But Charlotte, she would not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for;
8452 and luckily he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
8453 stepped over directly, and as soon as ever Mama, he said
8454 just as we did, that it was nothing in the world but the red gum, and
8455 then Charlotte was easy. And so, just as he was going away again, it
8456 came into my head, I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of
8457 it, but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news. So upon
8458 that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave, and seemed to know
8459 something or other, and at last he said in a whisper, 'For fear any
8460 unpleasant report should reach the young ladies under your care as to
8461 their sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say, that I
8462 believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope Mrs. Dashwood will
8463 do very well.'"
8464
8465 "What! is Fanny ill?"
8466
8467 "That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I, 'is Mrs.
8468 Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the long and the short of
8469 the matter, by all I can learn, seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars,
8470 the very young man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
8471 turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing in it), Mr.
8472 Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged above this twelvemonth to my
8473 cousin Lucy!--There's for you, my dear!--And not a creature knowing a
8474 syllable of the matter, except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a
8475 thing possible?-- There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
8476 but that matters should be brought so forward between them, and nobody
8477 suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened to see them together,
8478 or I am sure I should have found it out directly. Well, and so this
8479 was kept a great secret, for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor
8480 your brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--till this very
8481 morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a well-meaning creature, but no
8482 conjurer, popt it all out. 'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are
8483 all so fond of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
8484 and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all alone at her
8485 carpet-work, little suspecting what was to come--for she had just been
8486 saying to your brother, only five minutes before, that she thought to
8487 make a match between Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget
8488 who. So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity and pride.
8489 She fell into violent hysterics immediately, with such screams as
8490 reached your brother's ears, as he was sitting in his own dressing-room
8491 down stairs, thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the
8492 country. So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place, for
8493 Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming what was going on.
8494 Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say, I think she was used very
8495 hardly; for your sister scolded like any fury, and soon drove her into
8496 a fainting fit. Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
8497 and your brother, he walked about the room, and said he did not know
8498 what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared they should not stay a minute
8499 longer in the house, and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS
8500 knees too, to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed up
8501 their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again, and he was so
8502 frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan, and Mr. Donavan found
8503 the house in all this uproar. The carriage was at the door ready to
8504 take my poor cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he came
8505 off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says, she could hardly walk; and
8506 Nancy, she was almost as bad. I declare, I have no patience with your
8507 sister; and I hope, with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of
8508 her. Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he hears of
8509 it! To have his love used so scornfully! for they say he is monstrous
8510 fond of her, as well he may. I should not wonder, if he was to be in
8511 the greatest passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
8512 had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is, that he is
8513 gone back again to Harley Street, that he may be within call when Mrs.
8514 Ferrars is told of it, for she was sent for as soon as ever my cousins
8515 left the house, for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
8516 and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for either of them. I
8517 have no notion of people's making such a to-do about money and
8518 greatness. There is no reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should
8519 not marry; for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well by her
8520 son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself, she knows better than
8521 any body how to make the most of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs.
8522 Ferrars would only allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as
8523 good an appearance with it as any body else would with eight. Lord!
8524 how snug they might live in such another cottage as yours--or a little
8525 bigger--with two maids, and two men; and I believe I could help them to
8526 a housemaid, for my Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit
8527 them exactly."
8528
8529 Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had time enough to collect
8530 her thoughts, she was able to give such an answer, and make such
8531 observations, as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
8532 Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary interest
8533 in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late often hoped might be the
8534 case) had ceased to imagine her at all attached to Edward; and happy
8535 above all the rest, in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
8536 to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to give her judgment,
8537 as she believed, with impartiality on the conduct of every one
8538 concerned in it.
8539
8540 She could hardly determine what her own expectation of its event really
8541 was; though she earnestly tried to drive away the notion of its being
8542 possible to end otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and
8543 Lucy. What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could not be a
8544 doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear; and still more anxious to
8545 know how Edward would conduct himself. For HIM she felt much
8546 compassion;--for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to
8547 procure that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
8548
8549 As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject, Elinor soon saw the
8550 necessity of preparing Marianne for its discussion. No time was to be
8551 lost in undeceiving her, in making her acquainted with the real truth,
8552 and in endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
8553 without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister, or any
8554 resentment against Edward.
8555
8556 Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going to remove what she
8557 really believed to be her sister's chief consolation,--to give such
8558 particulars of Edward as she feared would ruin him for ever in her good
8559 opinion,-and to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
8560 which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own disappointment
8561 over again. But unwelcome as such a task must be, it was necessary to
8562 be done, and Elinor therefore hastened to perform it.
8563
8564 She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own feelings, or to
8565 represent herself as suffering much, any otherwise than as the
8566 self-command she had practised since her first knowledge of Edward's
8567 engagement, might suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
8568 Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could not be given
8569 without emotion, it was not accompanied by violent agitation, nor
8570 impetuous grief.--THAT belonged rather to the hearer, for Marianne
8571 listened with horror, and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the
8572 comforter of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs; and
8573 all the comfort that could be given by assurances of her own composure
8574 of mind, and a very earnest vindication of Edward from every charge but
8575 of imprudence, was readily offered.
8576
8577 But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither. Edward seemed
8578 a second Willoughby; and acknowledging as Elinor did, that she HAD
8579 loved him most sincerely, could she feel less than herself! As for
8580 Lucy Steele, she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
8581 incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could not be persuaded
8582 at first to believe, and afterwards to pardon, any former affection of
8583 Edward for her. She would not even admit it to have been natural; and
8584 Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so, by that which only
8585 could convince her, a better knowledge of mankind.
8586
8587 Her first communication had reached no farther than to state the fact
8588 of the engagement, and the length of time it had existed.--Marianne's
8589 feelings had then broken in, and put an end to all regularity of
8590 detail; and for some time all that could be done was to soothe her
8591 distress, lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
8592 question on her side, which led to farther particulars, was,--
8593
8594 "How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has he written to you?"
8595
8596 "I have known it these four months. When Lucy first came to Barton
8597 Park last November, she told me in confidence of her engagement."
8598
8599 At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment which her
8600 lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder, she exclaimed--
8601
8602 "Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
8603
8604 Elinor confirmed it.
8605
8606 "What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this been on your
8607 heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
8608
8609 "It was not fit that you should then know how much I was the reverse!"
8610
8611 "Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--so cheerful!--how
8612 have you been supported?"--
8613
8614 "By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to Lucy, obliged me
8615 to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore, to avoid giving any hint of
8616 the truth; and I owed it to my family and friends, not to create in
8617 them a solicitude about me, which it could not be in my power to
8618 satisfy."
8619
8620 Marianne seemed much struck.
8621
8622 "I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my mother," added
8623 Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--but without betraying
8624 my trust, I never could have convinced you."
8625
8626 "Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
8627
8628 "Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort of others was
8629 dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing how much I felt.
8630 Now, I can think and speak of it with little emotion. I would not have
8631 you suffer on my account; for I assure you I no longer suffer
8632 materially myself. I have many things to support me. I am not
8633 conscious of having provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my
8634 own, I have borne it as much as possible without spreading it farther.
8635 I acquit Edward of essential misconduct. I wish him very happy; and I
8636 am so sure of his always doing his duty, that though now he may harbour
8637 some regret, in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
8638 and that is the foundation on which every thing good may be built.--And
8639 after all, Marianne, after all that is bewitching in the idea of a
8640 single and constant attachment, and all that can be said of one's
8641 happiness depending entirely on any particular person, it is not
8642 meant--it is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.-- Edward
8643 will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior in person and
8644 understanding to half her sex; and time and habit will teach him to
8645 forget that he ever thought another superior to HER."--
8646
8647 "If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne, "if the loss of what
8648 is most valued is so easily to be made up by something else, your
8649 resolution, your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
8650 wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
8651
8652 "I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever felt much.--For
8653 four months, Marianne, I have had all this hanging on my mind, without
8654 being at liberty to speak of it to a single creature; knowing that it
8655 would make you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained to
8656 you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.-- It was told
8657 me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the very person herself, whose
8658 prior engagement ruined all my prospects; and told me, as I thought,
8659 with triumph.-- This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to
8660 oppose, by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
8661 deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have had her
8662 hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.-- I have known
8663 myself to be divided from Edward for ever, without hearing one
8664 circumstance that could make me less desire the connection.--Nothing
8665 has proved him unworthy; nor has anything declared him indifferent to
8666 me.-- I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister, and
8667 the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the punishment of an
8668 attachment, without enjoying its advantages.-- And all this has been
8669 going on at a time, when, as you know too well, it has not been my only
8670 unhappiness.-- If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
8671 may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure of mind with which
8672 I have brought myself at present to consider the matter, the
8673 consolation that I have been willing to admit, have been the effect of
8674 constant and painful exertion;--they did not spring up of
8675 themselves;--they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.-- No,
8676 Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence, perhaps nothing
8677 could have kept me entirely--not even what I owed to my dearest
8678 friends--from openly shewing that I was VERY unhappy."--
8679
8680 Marianne was quite subdued.--
8681
8682 "Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate myself for ever.--How
8683 barbarous have I been to you!--you, who have been my only comfort, who
8684 have borne with me in all my misery, who have seemed to be only
8685 suffering for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I can
8686 make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself, I have been trying
8687 to do it away."
8688
8689 The tenderest caresses followed this confession. In such a frame of
8690 mind as she was now in, Elinor had no difficulty in obtaining from her
8691 whatever promise she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
8692 never to speak of the affair to any one with the least appearance of
8693 bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying the smallest increase of
8694 dislike to her;--and even to see Edward himself, if chance should bring
8695 them together, without any diminution of her usual cordiality.-- These
8696 were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt that she had injured,
8697 no reparation could be too much for her to make.
8698
8699 She performed her promise of being discreet, to admiration.--She
8700 attended to all that Mrs. Jennings had to say upon the subject, with an
8701 unchanging complexion, dissented from her in nothing, and was heard
8702 three times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise of Lucy
8703 with only moving from one chair to another, and when Mrs. Jennings
8704 talked of Edward's affection, it cost her only a spasm in her
8705 throat.--Such advances towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel
8706 equal to any thing herself.
8707
8708 The next morning brought a farther trial of it, in a visit from their
8709 brother, who came with a most serious aspect to talk over the dreadful
8710 affair, and bring them news of his wife.
8711
8712 "You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity, as soon as
8713 he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery that took place under
8714 our roof yesterday."
8715
8716 They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful a moment for speech.
8717
8718 "Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully. Mrs. Ferrars
8719 too--in short it has been a scene of such complicated distress--but I
8720 will hope that the storm may be weathered without our being any of us
8721 quite overcome. Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday. But I
8722 would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there is nothing materially
8723 to be apprehended; her constitution is a good one, and her resolution
8724 equal to any thing. She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an
8725 angel! She says she never shall think well of anybody again; and one
8726 cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--meeting with such
8727 ingratitude, where so much kindness had been shewn, so much confidence
8728 had been placed! It was quite out of the benevolence of her heart,
8729 that she had asked these young women to her house; merely because she
8730 thought they deserved some attention, were harmless, well-behaved
8731 girls, and would be pleasant companions; for otherwise we both wished
8732 very much to have invited you and Marianne to be with us, while your
8733 kind friend there, was attending her daughter. And now to be so
8734 rewarded! 'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
8735 affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead of them.'"
8736
8737 Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done, he went on.
8738
8739 "What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny broke it to her, is
8740 not to be described. While she with the truest affection had been
8741 planning a most eligible connection for him, was it to be supposed that
8742 he could be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such a
8743 suspicion could never have entered her head! If she suspected ANY
8744 prepossession elsewhere, it could not be in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to
8745 be sure,' said she, 'I might have thought myself safe.' She was quite
8746 in an agony. We consulted together, however, as to what should be
8747 done, and at last she determined to send for Edward. He came. But I
8748 am sorry to relate what ensued. All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to
8749 make him put an end to the engagement, assisted too as you may well
8750 suppose by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of no avail.
8751 Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded. I never thought Edward
8752 so stubborn, so unfeeling before. His mother explained to him her
8753 liberal designs, in case of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she
8754 would settle on him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax,
8755 brings in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters grew
8756 desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition to this, if he
8757 still persisted in this low connection, represented to him the certain
8758 penury that must attend the match. His own two thousand pounds she
8759 protested should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
8760 would she be from affording him the smallest assistance, that if he
8761 were to enter into any profession with a view of better support, she
8762 would do all in her power to prevent him advancing in it."
8763
8764 Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation, clapped her hands
8765 together, and cried, "Gracious God! can this be possible!"
8766
8767 "Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother, "at the obstinacy
8768 which could resist such arguments as these. Your exclamation is very
8769 natural."
8770
8771 Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered her promises, and
8772 forbore.
8773
8774 "All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain. Edward said
8775 very little; but what he did say, was in the most determined manner.
8776 Nothing should prevail on him to give up his engagement. He would
8777 stand to it, cost him what it might."
8778
8779 "Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity, no longer able to be
8780 silent, "he has acted like an honest man! I beg your pardon, Mr.
8781 Dashwood, but if he had done otherwise, I should have thought him a
8782 rascal. I have some little concern in the business, as well as
8783 yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe there is not a
8784 better kind of girl in the world, nor one who more deserves a good
8785 husband."
8786
8787 John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature was calm, not open
8788 to provocation, and he never wished to offend anybody, especially
8789 anybody of good fortune. He therefore replied, without any resentment,
8790
8791 "I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any relation of yours,
8792 madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say, a very deserving young woman,
8793 but in the present case you know, the connection must be impossible.
8794 And to have entered into a secret engagement with a young man under her
8795 uncle's care, the son of a woman especially of such very large fortune
8796 as Mrs. Ferrars, is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In
8797 short, I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person whom
8798 you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish her extremely happy;
8799 and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout the whole, has been such as every
8800 conscientious, good mother, in like circumstances, would adopt. It has
8801 been dignified and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
8802 it will be a bad one."
8803
8804 Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension; and Elinor's heart wrung
8805 for the feelings of Edward, while braving his mother's threats, for a
8806 woman who could not reward him.
8807
8808 "Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
8809
8810 "I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:-- Edward is
8811 dismissed for ever from his mother's notice. He left her house
8812 yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether he is still in town, I do
8813 not know; for WE of course can make no inquiry."
8814
8815 "Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
8816
8817 "What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration. Born to the
8818 prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive a situation more
8819 deplorable. The interest of two thousand pounds--how can a man live on
8820 it?--and when to that is added the recollection, that he might, but for
8821 his own folly, within three months have been in the receipt of two
8822 thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has thirty thousand
8823 pounds,) I cannot picture to myself a more wretched condition. We must
8824 all feel for him; and the more so, because it is totally out of our
8825 power to assist him."
8826
8827 "Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure he should be very
8828 welcome to bed and board at my house; and so I would tell him if I
8829 could see him. It is not fit that he should be living about at his own
8830 charge now, at lodgings and taverns."
8831
8832 Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward, though she
8833 could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
8834
8835 "If he would only have done as well by himself," said John Dashwood,
8836 "as all his friends were disposed to do by him, he might now have been
8837 in his proper situation, and would have wanted for nothing. But as it
8838 is, it must be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
8839 thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than all--his
8840 mother has determined, with a very natural kind of spirit, to settle
8841 THAT estate upon Robert immediately, which might have been Edward's, on
8842 proper conditions. I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking
8843 over the business."
8844
8845 "Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge. Everybody has a way
8846 of their own. But I don't think mine would be, to make one son
8847 independent, because another had plagued me."
8848
8849 Marianne got up and walked about the room.
8850
8851 "Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man," continued John,
8852 "than to see his younger brother in possession of an estate which might
8853 have been his own? Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
8854
8855 A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion, concluded his
8856 visit; and with repeated assurances to his sisters that he really
8857 believed there was no material danger in Fanny's indisposition, and
8858 that they need not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
8859 leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments on the present
8860 occasion, as far at least as it regarded Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the
8861 Dashwoods', and Edward's.
8862
8863 Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he quitted the room; and
8864 as her vehemence made reserve impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in
8865 Mrs. Jennings, they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the
8866 party.
8867
8868
8869
8870 CHAPTER 38
8871
8872
8873 Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's conduct, but only
8874 Elinor and Marianne understood its true merit. THEY only knew how
8875 little he had had to tempt him to be disobedient, and how small was the
8876 consolation, beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could remain
8877 to him in the loss of friends and fortune. Elinor gloried in his
8878 integrity; and Marianne forgave all his offences in compassion for his
8879 punishment. But though confidence between them was, by this public
8880 discovery, restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on which
8881 either of them were fond of dwelling when alone. Elinor avoided it
8882 upon principle, as tending to fix still more upon her thoughts, by the
8883 too warm, too positive assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's
8884 continued affection for herself which she rather wished to do away; and
8885 Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying to converse upon a topic
8886 which always left her more dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the
8887 comparison it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
8888
8889 She felt all the force of that comparison; but not as her sister had
8890 hoped, to urge her to exertion now; she felt it with all the pain of
8891 continual self-reproach, regretted most bitterly that she had never
8892 exerted herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
8893 without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened that she
8894 still fancied present exertion impossible, and therefore it only
8895 dispirited her more.
8896
8897 Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards, of affairs
8898 in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings. But though so much of the
8899 matter was known to them already, that Mrs. Jennings might have had
8900 enough to do in spreading that knowledge farther, without seeking after
8901 more, she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort and
8902 inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could; and nothing but the
8903 hindrance of more visitors than usual, had prevented her going to them
8904 within that time.
8905
8906 The third day succeeding their knowledge of the particulars, was so
8907 fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw many to Kensington Gardens,
8908 though it was only the second week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor
8909 were of the number; but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were
8910 again in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them, chose rather
8911 to stay at home, than venture into so public a place.
8912
8913 An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined them soon after they
8914 entered the Gardens, and Elinor was not sorry that by her continuing
8915 with them, and engaging all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was
8916 herself left to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
8917 nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody who could by
8918 any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting to her. But at last
8919 she found herself with some surprise, accosted by Miss Steele, who,
8920 though looking rather shy, expressed great satisfaction in meeting
8921 them, and on receiving encouragement from the particular kindness of
8922 Mrs. Jennings, left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
8923 Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
8924
8925 "Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you any thing if you
8926 ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
8927
8928 It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity and Elinor's too,
8929 that she would tell any thing WITHOUT being asked; for nothing would
8930 otherwise have been learnt.
8931
8932 "I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele, taking her familiarly by
8933 the arm--"for I wanted to see you of all things in the world." And
8934 then lowering her voice, "I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about
8935 it. Is she angry?"
8936
8937 "Not at all, I believe, with you."
8938
8939 "That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
8940
8941 "I cannot suppose it possible that she should be."
8942
8943 "I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have had such a time of
8944 it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage in my life. She vowed at first
8945 she would never trim me up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me
8946 again, so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to, and we are
8947 as good friends as ever. Look, she made me this bow to my hat, and put
8948 in the feather last night. There now, YOU are going to laugh at me
8949 too. But why should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
8950 the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part, I should never
8951 have known he DID like it better than any other colour, if he had not
8952 happened to say so. My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare
8953 sometimes I do not know which way to look before them."
8954
8955 She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor had nothing to say,
8956 and therefore soon judged it expedient to find her way back again to
8957 the first.
8958
8959 "Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly, "people may say what
8960 they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's declaring he would not have Lucy, for it
8961 is no such thing I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such
8962 ill-natured reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
8963 about it herself, you know, it was no business of other people to set
8964 it down for certain."
8965
8966 "I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before, I assure you,"
8967 said Elinor.
8968
8969 "Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well, and by more than
8970 one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks, that nobody in their senses could
8971 expect Mr. Ferrars to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty
8972 thousand pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had nothing at
8973 all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself. And besides that, my cousin
8974 Richard said himself, that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr.
8975 Ferrars would be off; and when Edward did not come near us for three
8976 days, I could not tell what to think myself; and I believe in my heart
8977 Lucy gave it up all for lost; for we came away from your brother's
8978 Wednesday, and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday, and
8979 Saturday, and did not know what was become of him. Once Lucy thought
8980 to write to him, but then her spirits rose against that. However this
8981 morning he came just as we came home from church; and then it all came
8982 out, how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street, and been
8983 talked to by his mother and all of them, and how he had declared before
8984 them all that he loved nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he
8985 have. And how he had been so worried by what passed, that as soon as
8986 he had went away from his mother's house, he had got upon his horse,
8987 and rid into the country, some where or other; and how he had stayed
8988 about at an inn all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
8989 of it. And after thinking it all over and over again, he said, it
8990 seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune, and no nothing at all, it
8991 would be quite unkind to keep her on to the engagement, because it must
8992 be for her loss, for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no
8993 hope of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders, as he had some
8994 thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy, and how was they to live
8995 upon that?--He could not bear to think of her doing no better, and so
8996 he begged, if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
8997 matter directly, and leave him shift for himself. I heard him say all
8998 this as plain as could possibly be. And it was entirely for HER sake,
8999 and upon HER account, that he said a word about being off, and not upon
9000 his own. I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being tired
9001 of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any thing like it. But,
9002 to be sure, Lucy would not give ear to such kind of talking; so she
9003 told him directly (with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
9004 and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things you
9005 know)--she told him directly, she had not the least mind in the world
9006 to be off, for she could live with him upon a trifle, and how little so
9007 ever he might have, she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
9008 or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy, and talked
9009 on some time about what they should do, and they agreed he should take
9010 orders directly, and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
9011 And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin called from
9012 below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in her coach, and would take
9013 one of us to Kensington Gardens; so I was forced to go into the room
9014 and interrupt them, to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did
9015 not care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put on a pair of
9016 silk stockings and came off with the Richardsons."
9017
9018 "I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them," said Elinor;
9019 "you were all in the same room together, were not you?"
9020
9021 "No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you think people make love
9022 when any body else is by? Oh, for shame!--To be sure you must know
9023 better than that. (Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in
9024 the drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening at the
9025 door."
9026
9027 "How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me what you only
9028 learnt yourself by listening at the door? I am sorry I did not know it
9029 before; for I certainly would not have suffered you to give me
9030 particulars of a conversation which you ought not to have known
9031 yourself. How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
9032
9033 "Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at the door, and heard
9034 what I could. And I am sure Lucy would have done just the same by me;
9035 for a year or two back, when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets
9036 together, she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind a
9037 chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
9038
9039 Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss Steele could not be
9040 kept beyond a couple of minutes, from what was uppermost in her mind.
9041
9042 "Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she; "but now he is
9043 lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an ill-natured woman his mother is,
9044 an't she? And your brother and sister were not very kind! However, I
9045 shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure they did send
9046 us home in their own chariot, which was more than I looked for. And
9047 for my part, I was all in a fright for fear your sister should ask us
9048 for the huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
9049 nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine out of sight.
9050 Edward have got some business at Oxford, he says; so he must go there
9051 for a time; and after THAT, as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he
9052 will be ordained. I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
9053 (giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what my cousins will
9054 say, when they hear of it. They will tell me I should write to the
9055 Doctor, to get Edward the curacy of his new living. I know they will;
9056 but I am sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.-- 'La!' I
9057 shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think of such a thing? I
9058 write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
9059
9060 "Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared against the worst.
9061 You have got your answer ready."
9062
9063 Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject, but the approach of
9064 her own party made another more necessary.
9065
9066 "Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal more to say to
9067 you, but I must not stay away from them not any longer. I assure you
9068 they are very genteel people. He makes a monstrous deal of money, and
9069 they keep their own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings
9070 about it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she is not
9071 in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same; and if anything
9072 should happen to take you and your sister away, and Mrs. Jennings
9073 should want company, I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay
9074 with her for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
9075 won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry Miss Marianne was
9076 not here. Remember me kindly to her. La! if you have not got your
9077 spotted muslin on!--I wonder you was not afraid of its being torn."
9078
9079 Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had time only to pay
9080 her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings, before her company was
9081 claimed by Mrs. Richardson; and Elinor was left in possession of
9082 knowledge which might feed her powers of reflection some time, though
9083 she had learnt very little more than what had been already foreseen and
9084 foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage with Lucy was as firmly
9085 determined on, and the time of its taking place remained as absolutely
9086 uncertain, as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
9087 exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment, of
9088 which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
9089
9090 As soon as they returned to the carriage, Mrs. Jennings was eager for
9091 information; but as Elinor wished to spread as little as possible
9092 intelligence that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained, she
9093 confined herself to the brief repetition of such simple particulars, as
9094 she felt assured that Lucy, for the sake of her own consequence, would
9095 choose to have known. The continuance of their engagement, and the
9096 means that were able to be taken for promoting its end, was all her
9097 communication; and this produced from Mrs. Jennings the following
9098 natural remark.
9099
9100 "Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how THAT will
9101 end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding no good comes of it,
9102 will set down upon a curacy of fifty pounds a-year, with the interest
9103 of his two thousand pounds, and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr.
9104 Pratt can give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and Lord
9105 help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see what I can give them
9106 towards furnishing their house. Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I
9107 talked of t'other day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all
9108 works.-- Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
9109
9110 The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the two-penny post from
9111 Lucy herself. It was as follows:
9112
9113 "Bartlett's Building, March.
9114
9115 "I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
9116 liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
9117 friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
9118 a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
9119 all the troubles we have went through lately,
9120 therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
9121 to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
9122 dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
9123 as we must always be in one another's love. We have
9124 had great trials, and great persecutions, but
9125 however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
9126 many friends, yourself not the least among them,
9127 whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
9128 remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
9129 it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
9130 dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
9131 him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
9132 parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
9133 duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
9134 and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
9135 he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
9136 he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
9137 have my affections; our prospects are not very
9138 bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
9139 the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
9140 it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
9141 body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
9142 will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
9143 trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
9144 or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
9145 assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
9146 she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
9147 nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
9148 trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
9149 any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
9150 cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
9151 me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
9152 and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
9153 and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
9154 chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
9155
9156 "I am, &c."
9157
9158 As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed what she concluded to
9159 be its writer's real design, by placing it in the hands of Mrs.
9160 Jennings, who read it aloud with many comments of satisfaction and
9161 praise.
9162
9163 "Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye, that was quite
9164 proper to let him be off if he would. That was just like Lucy.--Poor
9165 soul! I wish I COULD get him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me
9166 dear Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl as ever
9167 lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence is very prettily turned.
9168 Yes, yes, I will go and see her, sure enough. How attentive she is, to
9169 think of every body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is as
9170 pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head and heart great
9171 credit."
9172
9173
9174
9175 CHAPTER 39
9176
9177
9178 The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than two months in town,
9179 and Marianne's impatience to be gone increased every day. She sighed
9180 for the air, the liberty, the quiet of the country; and fancied that if
9181 any place could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
9182 less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much less bent
9183 on its being effected immediately, as that she was conscious of the
9184 difficulties of so long a journey, which Marianne could not be brought
9185 to acknowledge. She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts
9186 towards its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes to
9187 their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the eloquence of her
9188 good-will, when a plan was suggested, which, though detaining them from
9189 home yet a few weeks longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more
9190 eligible than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland about
9191 the end of March, for the Easter holidays; and Mrs. Jennings, with both
9192 her friends, received a very warm invitation from Charlotte to go with
9193 them. This would not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy
9194 of Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real politeness by
9195 Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very great amendment of his
9196 manners towards them since her sister had been known to be unhappy,
9197 induced her to accept it with pleasure.
9198
9199 When she told Marianne what she had done, however, her first reply was
9200 not very auspicious.
9201
9202 "Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation. "No, I cannot go to
9203 Cleveland."--
9204
9205 "You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation is not...that it
9206 is not in the neighbourhood of..."
9207
9208 "But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go into Somersetshire.--There,
9209 where I looked forward to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to
9210 go there."
9211
9212 Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming such
9213 feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by working on
9214 others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure which would fix the
9215 time of her returning to that dear mother, whom she so much wished to
9216 see, in a more eligible, more comfortable manner, than any other plan
9217 could do, and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland, which
9218 was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to Barton was not
9219 beyond one day, though a long day's journey; and their mother's servant
9220 might easily come there to attend them down; and as there could be no
9221 occasion of their staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be
9222 at home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's affection
9223 for her mother was sincere, it must triumph with little difficulty,
9224 over the imaginary evils she had started.
9225
9226 Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guests, that she
9227 pressed them very earnestly to return with her again from Cleveland.
9228 Elinor was grateful for the attention, but it could not alter her
9229 design; and their mother's concurrence being readily gained, every
9230 thing relative to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--and
9231 Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement of the hours that
9232 were yet to divide her from Barton.
9233
9234 "Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall do without the Miss
9235 Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's address to him when he first called on
9236 her, after their leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
9237 upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we shall be, when I
9238 come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape at one another as dull as two
9239 cats."
9240
9241 Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous sketch of their
9242 future ennui, to provoke him to make that offer, which might give
9243 himself an escape from it;--and if so, she had soon afterwards good
9244 reason to think her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the
9245 window to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print, which she
9246 was going to copy for her friend, he followed her to it with a look of
9247 particular meaning, and conversed with her there for several minutes.
9248 The effect of his discourse on the lady too, could not escape her
9249 observation, for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
9250 changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear, to one close by
9251 the piano forte on which Marianne was playing, she could not keep
9252 herself from seeing that Elinor changed colour, attended with
9253 agitation, and was too intent on what he said to pursue her
9254 employment.-- Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the
9255 interval of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another, some words
9256 of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear, in which he seemed to be
9257 apologising for the badness of his house. This set the matter beyond a
9258 doubt. She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary to do so;
9259 but supposed it to be the proper etiquette. What Elinor said in reply
9260 she could not distinguish, but judged from the motion of her lips, that
9261 she did not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
9262 commended her in her heart for being so honest. They then talked on
9263 for a few minutes longer without her catching a syllable, when another
9264 lucky stop in Marianne's performance brought her these words in the
9265 Colonel's calm voice,--
9266
9267 "I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
9268
9269 Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech, she was almost
9270 ready to cry out, "Lord! what should hinder it?"--but checking her
9271 desire, confined herself to this silent ejaculation.
9272
9273 "This is very strange!--sure he need not wait to be older."
9274
9275 This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not seem to offend or
9276 mortify his fair companion in the least, for on their breaking up the
9277 conference soon afterwards, and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings
9278 very plainly heard Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to
9279 feel what she said,
9280
9281 "I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
9282
9283 Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude, and only wondered that
9284 after hearing such a sentence, the Colonel should be able to take leave
9285 of them, as he immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
9286 without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old friend could
9287 have made so indifferent a suitor.
9288
9289 What had really passed between them was to this effect.
9290
9291 "I have heard," said he, with great compassion, "of the injustice your
9292 friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered from his family; for if I understand
9293 the matter right, he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
9294 in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.-- Have I been
9295 rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
9296
9297 Elinor told him that it was.
9298
9299 "The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied, with great
9300 feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide, two young people long
9301 attached to each other, is terrible.-- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what
9302 she may be doing--what she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr.
9303 Ferrars two or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased with
9304 him. He is not a young man with whom one can be intimately acquainted
9305 in a short time, but I have seen enough of him to wish him well for his
9306 own sake, and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more. I understand
9307 that he intends to take orders. Will you be so good as to tell him
9308 that the living of Delaford, now just vacant, as I am informed by this
9309 day's post, is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
9310 perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now, it may be
9311 nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it were more valuable.-- It
9312 is a rectory, but a small one; the late incumbent, I believe, did not
9313 make more than 200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable of
9314 improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as to afford him a very
9315 comfortable income. Such as it is, however, my pleasure in presenting
9316 it to him, will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
9317
9318 Elinor's astonishment at this commission could hardly have been
9319 greater, had the Colonel been really making her an offer of his hand.
9320 The preferment, which only two days before she had considered as
9321 hopeless for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--and
9322 SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to bestow it!--Her
9323 emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had attributed to a very different
9324 cause;--but whatever minor feelings less pure, less pleasing, might
9325 have a share in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
9326 and her gratitude for the particular friendship, which together
9327 prompted Colonel Brandon to this act, were strongly felt, and warmly
9328 expressed. She thanked him for it with all her heart, spoke of
9329 Edward's principles and disposition with that praise which she knew
9330 them to deserve; and promised to undertake the commission with
9331 pleasure, if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
9332 to another. But at the same time, she could not help thinking that no
9333 one could so well perform it as himself. It was an office in short,
9334 from which, unwilling to give Edward the pain of receiving an
9335 obligation from HER, she would have been very glad to be spared
9336 herself;-- but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy, declining
9337 it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being given through her
9338 means, that she would not on any account make farther opposition.
9339 Edward, she believed, was still in town, and fortunately she had heard
9340 his address from Miss Steele. She could undertake therefore to inform
9341 him of it, in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
9342 Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage in securing so
9343 respectable and agreeable a neighbour, and THEN it was that he
9344 mentioned with regret, that the house was small and indifferent;--an
9345 evil which Elinor, as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very
9346 light of, at least as far as regarded its size.
9347
9348 "The smallness of the house," said she, "I cannot imagine any
9349 inconvenience to them, for it will be in proportion to their family and
9350 income."
9351
9352 By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE was considering Mr.
9353 Ferrars's marriage as the certain consequence of the presentation; for
9354 he did not suppose it possible that Delaford living could supply such
9355 an income, as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle
9356 on--and he said so.
9357
9358 "This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars comfortable
9359 as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry. I am sorry to say that
9360 my patronage ends with this; and my interest is hardly more extensive.
9361 If, however, by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
9362 him farther, I must think very differently of him from what I now do,
9363 if I am not as ready to be useful to him then as I sincerely wish I
9364 could be at present. What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
9365 since it can advance him so little towards what must be his principal,
9366 his only object of happiness. His marriage must still be a distant
9367 good;--at least, I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
9368
9369 Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood, so justly offended the
9370 delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings; but after this narration of what
9371 really passed between Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at
9372 the window, the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
9373 perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited, nor less
9374 properly worded than if it had arisen from an offer of marriage.
9375
9376
9377
9378 CHAPTER 40
9379
9380
9381 "Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings, sagaciously smiling, as soon
9382 as the gentleman had withdrawn, "I do not ask you what the Colonel has
9383 been saying to you; for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of
9384 hearing, I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
9385 And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life, and I wish you
9386 joy of it with all my heart."
9387
9388 "Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter of great joy to me;
9389 and I feel the goodness of Colonel Brandon most sensibly. There are
9390 not many men who would act as he has done. Few people who have so
9391 compassionate a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
9392
9393 "Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least astonished at it
9394 in the world, for I have often thought of late, there was nothing more
9395 likely to happen."
9396
9397 "You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's general benevolence;
9398 but at least you could not foresee that the opportunity would so very
9399 soon occur."
9400
9401 "Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that, when a man has
9402 once made up his mind to such a thing, somehow or other he will soon
9403 find an opportunity. Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and
9404 again; and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think I
9405 shall soon know where to look for them."
9406
9407 "You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose," said Elinor, with a
9408 faint smile.
9409
9410 "Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house being a bad one,
9411 I do not know what the Colonel would be at, for it is as good a one as
9412 ever I saw."
9413
9414 "He spoke of its being out of repair."
9415
9416 "Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--who should do
9417 it but himself?"
9418
9419 They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to announce the
9420 carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings immediately preparing to
9421 go, said,--
9422
9423 "Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half my talk out.
9424 But, however, we may have it all over in the evening; for we shall be
9425 quite alone. I do not ask you to go with me, for I dare say your mind
9426 is too full of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
9427 long to tell your sister all about it."
9428
9429 Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
9430
9431 "Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it; but I shall not mention
9432 it at present to any body else."
9433
9434 "Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed. "Then you
9435 would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think of going as far as
9436 Holborn to-day."
9437
9438 "No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please. One day's delay will not be
9439 very material; and till I have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought
9440 not to be mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly. It is
9441 of importance that no time should be lost with him, for he will of
9442 course have much to do relative to his ordination."
9443
9444 This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly. Why Mr.
9445 Ferrars was to have been written to about it in such a hurry, she could
9446 not immediately comprehend. A few moments' reflection, however,
9447 produced a very happy idea, and she exclaimed;--
9448
9449 "Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be the man. Well, so
9450 much the better for him. Ay, to be sure, he must be ordained in
9451 readiness; and I am very glad to find things are so forward between
9452 you. But, my dear, is not this rather out of character? Should not
9453 the Colonel write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
9454
9455 Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of Mrs. Jennings's
9456 speech, neither did she think it worth inquiring into; and therefore
9457 only replied to its conclusion.
9458
9459 "Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather wished any one to
9460 announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars than himself."
9461
9462 "And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd kind of delicacy!
9463 However, I will not disturb you (seeing her preparing to write.) You
9464 know your own concerns best. So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of
9465 any thing to please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
9466
9467 And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
9468
9469 "I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear. I should be
9470 very glad to get her so good a mistress. But whether she would do for
9471 a lady's maid, I am sure I can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid,
9472 and works very well at her needle. However, you will think of all that
9473 at your leisure."
9474
9475 "Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing much of what she said,
9476 and more anxious to be alone, than to be mistress of the subject.
9477
9478 How she should begin--how she should express herself in her note to
9479 Edward, was now all her concern. The particular circumstances between
9480 them made a difficulty of that which to any other person would have
9481 been the easiest thing in the world; but she equally feared to say too
9482 much or too little, and sat deliberating over her paper, with the pen
9483 in her hand, till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
9484
9485 He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to the carriage, as he
9486 came to leave his farewell card; and she, after apologising for not
9487 returning herself, had obliged him to enter, by saying that Miss
9488 Dashwood was above, and wanted to speak with him on very particular
9489 business.
9490
9491 Elinor had just been congratulating herself, in the midst of her
9492 perplexity, that however difficult it might be to express herself
9493 properly by letter, it was at least preferable to giving the
9494 information by word of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her
9495 upon this greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
9496 were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had not seen him
9497 before since his engagement became public, and therefore not since his
9498 knowing her to be acquainted with it; which, with the consciousness of
9499 what she had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him, made her
9500 feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes. He too was much
9501 distressed; and they sat down together in a most promising state of
9502 embarrassment.--Whether he had asked her pardon for his intrusion on
9503 first coming into the room, he could not recollect; but determining to
9504 be on the safe side, he made his apology in form as soon as he could
9505 say any thing, after taking a chair.
9506
9507 "Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished to speak with me, at
9508 least I understood her so--or I certainly should not have intruded on
9509 you in such a manner; though at the same time, I should have been
9510 extremely sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
9511 especially as it will most likely be some time--it is not probable that
9512 I should soon have the pleasure of meeting you again. I go to Oxford
9513 tomorrow."
9514
9515 "You would not have gone, however," said Elinor, recovering herself,
9516 and determined to get over what she so much dreaded as soon as
9517 possible, "without receiving our good wishes, even if we had not been
9518 able to give them in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she
9519 said. I have something of consequence to inform you of, which I was on
9520 the point of communicating by paper. I am charged with a most
9521 agreeable office (breathing rather faster than usual as she spoke.)
9522 Colonel Brandon, who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to
9523 say, that understanding you mean to take orders, he has great pleasure
9524 in offering you the living of Delaford now just vacant, and only wishes
9525 it were more valuable. Allow me to congratulate you on having so
9526 respectable and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that the
9527 living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much more considerable,
9528 and such as might better enable you to--as might be more than a
9529 temporary accommodation to yourself--such, in short, as might establish
9530 all your views of happiness."
9531
9532 What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself, it cannot be expected
9533 that any one else should say for him. He LOOKED all the astonishment
9534 which such unexpected, such unthought-of information could not fail of
9535 exciting; but he said only these two words,
9536
9537 "Colonel Brandon!"
9538
9539 "Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution, as some of the
9540 worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means it as a testimony of his concern
9541 for what has lately passed--for the cruel situation in which the
9542 unjustifiable conduct of your family has placed you--a concern which I
9543 am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends, must share; and
9544 likewise as a proof of his high esteem for your general character, and
9545 his particular approbation of your behaviour on the present occasion."
9546
9547 "Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
9548
9549 "The unkindness of your own relations has made you astonished to find
9550 friendship any where."
9551
9552 "No," replied he, with sudden consciousness, "not to find it in YOU;
9553 for I cannot be ignorant that to you, to your goodness, I owe it
9554 all.--I feel it--I would express it if I could--but, as you well know,
9555 I am no orator."
9556
9557 "You are very much mistaken. I do assure you that you owe it entirely,
9558 at least almost entirely, to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's
9559 discernment of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
9560 till I understood his design, that the living was vacant; nor had it
9561 ever occurred to me that he might have had such a living in his gift.
9562 As a friend of mine, of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he
9563 HAS, still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word, you owe
9564 nothing to my solicitation."
9565
9566 Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share in the action, but
9567 she was at the same time so unwilling to appear as the benefactress of
9568 Edward, that she acknowledged it with hesitation; which probably
9569 contributed to fix that suspicion in his mind which had recently
9570 entered it. For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had
9571 ceased to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
9572
9573 "Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth and respectability. I have
9574 always heard him spoken of as such, and your brother I know esteems him
9575 highly. He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners perfectly
9576 the gentleman."
9577
9578 "Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him, on farther
9579 acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be, and as you will be
9580 such very near neighbours (for I understand the parsonage is almost
9581 close to the mansion-house,) it is particularly important that he
9582 SHOULD be all this."
9583
9584 Edward made no answer; but when she had turned away her head, gave her
9585 a look so serious, so earnest, so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he
9586 might hereafter wish the distance between the parsonage and the
9587 mansion-house much greater.
9588
9589 "Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street," said he, soon
9590 afterwards, rising from his chair.
9591
9592 Elinor told him the number of the house.
9593
9594 "I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks which you will not
9595 allow me to give YOU; to assure him that he has made me a very--an
9596 exceedingly happy man."
9597
9598 Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted, with a very
9599 earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing good wishes for his
9600 happiness in every change of situation that might befall him; on HIS,
9601 with rather an attempt to return the same good will, than the power of
9602 expressing it.
9603
9604 "When I see him again," said Elinor to herself, as the door shut him
9605 out, "I shall see him the husband of Lucy."
9606
9607 And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down to reconsider the
9608 past, recall the words and endeavour to comprehend all the feelings of
9609 Edward; and, of course, to reflect on her own with discontent.
9610
9611 When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned from seeing people
9612 whom she had never seen before, and of whom therefore she must have a
9613 great deal to say, her mind was so much more occupied by the important
9614 secret in her possession, than by anything else, that she reverted to
9615 it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
9616
9617 "Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up the young man. Did not I
9618 do right?--And I suppose you had no great difficulty--You did not find
9619 him very unwilling to accept your proposal?"
9620
9621 "No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
9622
9623 "Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems all to depend upon
9624 that."
9625
9626 "Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind of forms, that I
9627 can hardly even conjecture as to the time, or the preparation
9628 necessary; but I suppose two or three months will complete his
9629 ordination."
9630
9631 "Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear, how calmly
9632 you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two or three months! Lord
9633 bless me!--I am sure it would put ME quite out of patience!--And though
9634 one would be very glad to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think
9635 it is not worth while to wait two or three months for him. Sure
9636 somebody else might be found that would do as well; somebody that is in
9637 orders already."
9638
9639 "My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?-- Why,
9640 Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
9641
9642 "Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade me that the
9643 Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving ten guineas to Mr.
9644 Ferrars!"
9645
9646 The deception could not continue after this; and an explanation
9647 immediately took place, by which both gained considerable amusement for
9648 the moment, without any material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs.
9649 Jennings only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
9650 without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
9651
9652 "Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she, after the first
9653 ebullition of surprise and satisfaction was over, "and very likely MAY
9654 be out of repair; but to hear a man apologising, as I thought, for a
9655 house that to my knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor,
9656 and I think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--and to
9657 you too, that had been used to live in Barton cottage!-- It seems quite
9658 ridiculous. But, my dear, we must touch up the Colonel to do some
9659 thing to the parsonage, and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy
9660 goes to it."
9661
9662 "But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea of the living's
9663 being enough to allow them to marry."
9664
9665 "The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two thousand a-year
9666 himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry on less. Take my word
9667 for it, that, if I am alive, I shall be paying a visit at Delaford
9668 Parsonage before Michaelmas; and I am sure I shan't go if Lucy an't
9669 there."
9670
9671 Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability of their not
9672 waiting for any thing more.
9673
9674
9675
9676 CHAPTER 41
9677
9678
9679 Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon, proceeded with
9680 his happiness to Lucy; and such was the excess of it by the time he
9681 reached Bartlett's Buildings, that she was able to assure Mrs.
9682 Jennings, who called on her again the next day with her
9683 congratulations, that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
9684 her life.
9685
9686 Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at least very certain; and
9687 she joined Mrs. Jennings most heartily in her expectation of their
9688 being all comfortably together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
9689 So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness to give Elinor
9690 that credit which Edward WOULD give her, that she spoke of her
9691 friendship for them both with the most grateful warmth, was ready to
9692 own all their obligation to her, and openly declared that no exertion
9693 for their good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future, would
9694 ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of doing any thing in
9695 the world for those she really valued. As for Colonel Brandon, she was
9696 not only ready to worship him as a saint, but was moreover truly
9697 anxious that he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
9698 anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost; and scarcely
9699 resolved to avail herself, at Delaford, as far as she possibly could,
9700 of his servants, his carriage, his cows, and his poultry.
9701
9702 It was now above a week since John Dashwood had called in Berkeley
9703 Street, and as since that time no notice had been taken by them of his
9704 wife's indisposition, beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel
9705 it necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation, however,
9706 which not only opposed her own inclination, but which had not the
9707 assistance of any encouragement from her companions. Marianne, not
9708 contented with absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent to
9709 prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings, though her
9710 carriage was always at Elinor's service, so very much disliked Mrs.
9711 John Dashwood, that not even her curiosity to see how she looked after
9712 the late discovery, nor her strong desire to affront her by taking
9713 Edward's part, could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company
9714 again. The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself to pay a
9715 visit, for which no one could really have less inclination, and to run
9716 the risk of a tete-a-tete with a woman, whom neither of the others had
9717 so much reason to dislike.
9718
9719 Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could turn from the
9720 house, her husband accidentally came out. He expressed great pleasure
9721 in meeting Elinor, told her that he had been just going to call in
9722 Berkeley Street, and, assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see
9723 her, invited her to come in.
9724
9725 They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody was there.
9726
9727 "Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I will go to her
9728 presently, for I am sure she will not have the least objection in the
9729 world to seeing YOU.-- Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
9730 cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always great
9731 favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
9732
9733 Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
9734
9735 "I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied, "for I have a good deal
9736 to say to you. This living of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has
9737 he really given it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
9738 coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
9739
9740 "It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given the living of
9741 Delaford to Edward."
9742
9743 "Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no relationship!--no
9744 connection between them!--and now that livings fetch such a
9745 price!--what was the value of this?"
9746
9747 "About two hundred a year."
9748
9749 "Very well--and for the next presentation to a living of that
9750 value--supposing the late incumbent to have been old and sickly, and
9751 likely to vacate it soon--he might have got I dare say--fourteen
9752 hundred pounds. And how came he not to have settled that matter before
9753 this person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it, but a
9754 man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should be so improvident
9755 in a point of such common, such natural, concern!--Well, I am convinced
9756 that there is a vast deal of inconsistency in almost every human
9757 character. I suppose, however--on recollection--that the case may
9758 probably be THIS. Edward is only to hold the living till the person to
9759 whom the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough to
9760 take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
9761
9762 Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively; and by relating that
9763 she had herself been employed in conveying the offer from Colonel
9764 Brandon to Edward, and, therefore, must understand the terms on which
9765 it was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
9766
9767 "It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing what she
9768 said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
9769
9770 "A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
9771
9772 "Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be, Edward is a very lucky
9773 man.--You will not mention the matter to Fanny, however, for though I
9774 have broke it to her, and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like
9775 to hear it much talked of."
9776
9777 Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing, that she
9778 thought Fanny might have borne with composure, an acquisition of wealth
9779 to her brother, by which neither she nor her child could be possibly
9780 impoverished.
9781
9782 "Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the tone becoming so
9783 important a subject, "knows nothing about it at present, and I believe
9784 it will be best to keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may
9785 be.-- When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear of it all."
9786
9787 "But why should such precaution be used?--Though it is not to be
9788 supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have the smallest satisfaction in
9789 knowing that her son has money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be
9790 quite out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour, is she
9791 supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her son, she cast him off
9792 for ever, and has made all those over whom she had any influence, cast
9793 him off likewise. Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined
9794 liable to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--she cannot
9795 be interested in any thing that befalls him.-- She would not be so weak
9796 as to throw away the comfort of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of
9797 a parent!"
9798
9799 "Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good, but it is
9800 founded on ignorance of human nature. When Edward's unhappy match
9801 takes place, depend upon it his mother will feel as much as if she had
9802 never discarded him; and, therefore every circumstance that may
9803 accelerate that dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as
9804 possible. Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
9805
9806 "You surprise me; I should think it must nearly have escaped her memory
9807 by THIS time."
9808
9809 "You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one of the most
9810 affectionate mothers in the world."
9811
9812 Elinor was silent.
9813
9814 "We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause, "of ROBERT'S
9815 marrying Miss Morton."
9816
9817 Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance of her brother's
9818 tone, calmly replied,
9819
9820 "The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
9821
9822 "Choice!--how do you mean?"
9823
9824 "I only mean that I suppose, from your manner of speaking, it must be
9825 the same to Miss Morton whether she marry Edward or Robert."
9826
9827 "Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert will now to all
9828 intents and purposes be considered as the eldest son;--and as to any
9829 thing else, they are both very agreeable young men: I do not know that
9830 one is superior to the other."
9831
9832 Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short time silent.--His
9833 reflections ended thus.
9834
9835 "Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand, and speaking in
9836 an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--and I WILL do it, because I know
9837 it must gratify you. I have good reason to think--indeed I have it
9838 from the best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise it
9839 would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but I have it from the
9840 very best authority--not that I ever precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say
9841 it herself--but her daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in
9842 short, whatever objections there might be against a certain--a certain
9843 connection--you understand me--it would have been far preferable to
9844 her, it would not have given her half the vexation that THIS does. I
9845 was exceedingly pleased to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that
9846 light--a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all. 'It would
9847 have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least evil of the two, and
9848 she would be glad to compound NOW for nothing worse.' But however, all
9849 that is quite out of the question--not to be thought of or
9850 mentioned--as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all that
9851 is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you of this, because I
9852 knew how much it must please you. Not that you have any reason to
9853 regret, my dear Elinor. There is no doubt of your doing exceedingly
9854 well--quite as well, or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has
9855 Colonel Brandon been with you lately?"
9856
9857 Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity, and raise her
9858 self-importance, to agitate her nerves and fill her mind;--and she was
9859 therefore glad to be spared from the necessity of saying much in reply
9860 herself, and from the danger of hearing any thing more from her
9861 brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars. After a few moments'
9862 chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that Fanny was yet uninformed of her
9863 sister's being there, quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was
9864 left to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the gay
9865 unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner while enjoying so
9866 unfair a division of his mother's love and liberality, to the prejudice
9867 of his banished brother, earned only by his own dissipated course of
9868 life, and that brother's integrity, was confirming her most
9869 unfavourable opinion of his head and heart.
9870
9871 They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves, before he began to
9872 speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard of the living, and was very
9873 inquisitive on the subject. Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as
9874 she had given them to John; and their effect on Robert, though very
9875 different, was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
9876 most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman, and living
9877 in a small parsonage-house, diverted him beyond measure;--and when to
9878 that was added the fanciful imagery of Edward reading prayers in a
9879 white surplice, and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith
9880 and Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
9881
9882 Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable gravity, the
9883 conclusion of such folly, could not restrain her eyes from being fixed
9884 on him with a look that spoke all the contempt it excited. It was a
9885 look, however, very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings,
9886 and gave no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
9887 not by any reproof of hers, but by his own sensibility.
9888
9889 "We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last, recovering from the
9890 affected laugh which had considerably lengthened out the genuine gaiety
9891 of the moment--"but, upon my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor
9892 Edward! he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--for I
9893 know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as well-meaning a fellow
9894 perhaps, as any in the world. You must not judge of him, Miss
9895 Dashwood, from YOUR slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are
9896 certainly not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born, you
9897 know, with the same powers,--the same address.-- Poor fellow!--to see
9898 him in a circle of strangers!--to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but
9899 upon my soul, I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
9900 and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my life, as
9901 when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.-- My mother was the
9902 first person who told me of it; and I, feeling myself called on to act
9903 with resolution, immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
9904 what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself, I must
9905 say, that if Edward does marry this young woman, I never will see him
9906 again.' That was what I said immediately.-- I was most uncommonly
9907 shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has done for himself
9908 completely--shut himself out for ever from all decent society!--but, as
9909 I directly said to my mother, I am not in the least surprised at it;
9910 from his style of education, it was always to be expected. My poor
9911 mother was half frantic."
9912
9913 "Have you ever seen the lady?"
9914
9915 "Yes; once, while she was staying in this house, I happened to drop in
9916 for ten minutes; and I saw quite enough of her. The merest awkward
9917 country girl, without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
9918 I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I should suppose
9919 likely to captivate poor Edward. I offered immediately, as soon as my
9920 mother related the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
9921 him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found, to do any thing,
9922 for unluckily, I was not in the way at first, and knew nothing of it
9923 till after the breach had taken place, when it was not for me, you
9924 know, to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few hours
9925 earlier--I think it is most probable--that something might have been
9926 hit on. I certainly should have represented it to Edward in a very
9927 strong light. 'My dear fellow,' I should have said, 'consider what you
9928 are doing. You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a
9929 one as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot help
9930 thinking, in short, that means might have been found. But now it is
9931 all too late. He must be starved, you know;--that is certain;
9932 absolutely starved."
9933
9934 He had just settled this point with great composure, when the entrance
9935 of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject. But though SHE never
9936 spoke of it out of her own family, Elinor could see its influence on
9937 her mind, in the something like confusion of countenance with which she
9938 entered, and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself. She
9939 even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find that Elinor and her
9940 sister were so soon to leave town, as she had hoped to see more of
9941 them;--an exertion in which her husband, who attended her into the
9942 room, and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish every
9943 thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
9944
9945
9946
9947 CHAPTER 42
9948
9949
9950 One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor received her
9951 brother's congratulations on their travelling so far towards Barton
9952 without any expense, and on Colonel Brandon's being to follow them to
9953 Cleveland in a day or two, completed the intercourse of the brother and
9954 sisters in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come to Norland
9955 whenever it should happen to be in their way, which of all things was
9956 the most unlikely to occur, with a more warm, though less public,
9957 assurance, from John to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should
9958 come to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting in the
9959 country.
9960
9961 It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed determined to send
9962 her to Delaford;--a place, in which, of all others, she would now least
9963 chuse to visit, or wish to reside; for not only was it considered as
9964 her future home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy, when
9965 they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit her there.
9966
9967 Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day, the two parties
9968 from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set out from their respective
9969 homes, to meet, by appointment, on the road. For the convenience of
9970 Charlotte and her child, they were to be more than two days on their
9971 journey, and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with Colonel
9972 Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after their arrival.
9973
9974 Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort in London, and eager as
9975 she had long been to quit it, could not, when it came to the point, bid
9976 adieu to the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed those
9977 hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby, which were now extinguished
9978 for ever, without great pain. Nor could she leave the place in which
9979 Willoughby remained, busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which
9980 SHE could have no share, without shedding many tears.
9981
9982 Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal, was more positive.
9983 She had no such object for her lingering thoughts to fix on, she left
9984 no creature behind, from whom it would give her a moment's regret to be
9985 divided for ever, she was pleased to be free herself from the
9986 persecution of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing her
9987 sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage, and she looked
9988 forward with hope to what a few months of tranquility at Barton might
9989 do towards restoring Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
9990
9991 Their journey was safely performed. The second day brought them into
9992 the cherished, or the prohibited, county of Somerset, for as such was
9993 it dwelt on by turns in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of
9994 the third they drove up to Cleveland.
9995
9996 Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house, situated on a sloping
9997 lawn. It had no park, but the pleasure-grounds were tolerably
9998 extensive; and like every other place of the same degree of importance,
9999 it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk, a road of smooth
10000 gravel winding round a plantation, led to the front, the lawn was
10001 dotted over with timber, the house itself was under the guardianship of
10002 the fir, the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of them
10003 altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars, shut out the
10004 offices.
10005
10006 Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling with emotion from the
10007 consciousness of being only eighty miles from Barton, and not thirty
10008 from Combe Magna; and before she had been five minutes within its
10009 walls, while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show her child
10010 to the housekeeper, she quitted it again, stealing away through the
10011 winding shrubberies, now just beginning to be in beauty, to gain a
10012 distant eminence; where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering
10013 over a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly rest on
10014 the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon, and fancy that from their
10015 summits Combe Magna might be seen.
10016
10017 In such moments of precious, invaluable misery, she rejoiced in tears
10018 of agony to be at Cleveland; and as she returned by a different circuit
10019 to the house, feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty, of
10020 wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude, she
10021 resolved to spend almost every hour of every day while she remained
10022 with the Palmers, in the indulgence of such solitary rambles.
10023
10024 She returned just in time to join the others as they quitted the house,
10025 on an excursion through its more immediate premises; and the rest of
10026 the morning was easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen
10027 garden, examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
10028 gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through the
10029 green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants, unwarily exposed,
10030 and nipped by the lingering frost, raised the laughter of
10031 Charlotte,--and in visiting her poultry-yard, where, in the
10032 disappointed hopes of her dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or
10033 being stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising young
10034 brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
10035
10036 The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne, in her plan of employment
10037 abroad, had not calculated for any change of weather during their stay
10038 at Cleveland. With great surprise therefore, did she find herself
10039 prevented by a settled rain from going out again after dinner. She had
10040 depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple, and perhaps all over
10041 the grounds, and an evening merely cold or damp would not have deterred
10042 her from it; but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
10043 or pleasant weather for walking.
10044
10045 Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away. Mrs. Palmer
10046 had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work; they talked of the
10047 friends they had left behind, arranged Lady Middleton's engagements,
10048 and wondered whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
10049 than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned in it,
10050 joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had the knack of finding
10051 her way in every house to the library, however it might be avoided by
10052 the family in general, soon procured herself a book.
10053
10054 Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant and friendly
10055 good humour could do, to make them feel themselves welcome. The
10056 openness and heartiness of her manner more than atoned for that want of
10057 recollection and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
10058 of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty a face, was
10059 engaging; her folly, though evident was not disgusting, because it was
10060 not conceited; and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
10061
10062 The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very late dinner, affording
10063 a pleasant enlargement of the party, and a very welcome variety to
10064 their conversation, which a long morning of the same continued rain had
10065 reduced very low.
10066
10067 Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that little had seen so
10068 much variety in his address to her sister and herself, that she knew
10069 not what to expect to find him in his own family. She found him,
10070 however, perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
10071 and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother; she found him
10072 very capable of being a pleasant companion, and only prevented from
10073 being so always, by too great an aptitude to fancy himself as much
10074 superior to people in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs.
10075 Jennings and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits, they
10076 were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive, with no traits at all
10077 unusual in his sex and time of life. He was nice in his eating,
10078 uncertain in his hours; fond of his child, though affecting to slight
10079 it; and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought to have been
10080 devoted to business. She liked him, however, upon the whole, much
10081 better than she had expected, and in her heart was not sorry that she
10082 could like him no more;--not sorry to be driven by the observation of
10083 his Epicurism, his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with
10084 complacency on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple
10085 taste, and diffident feelings.
10086
10087 Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns, she now received
10088 intelligence from Colonel Brandon, who had been into Dorsetshire
10089 lately; and who, treating her at once as the disinterested friend of
10090 Mr. Ferrars, and the kind confidante of himself, talked to her a
10091 great deal of the parsonage at Delaford, described its deficiencies,
10092 and told her what he meant to do himself towards removing them.--His
10093 behaviour to her in this, as well as in every other particular, his
10094 open pleasure in meeting her after an absence of only ten days, his
10095 readiness to converse with her, and his deference for her opinion,
10096 might very well justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
10097 and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still, as from the
10098 first, believed Marianne his real favourite, to make her suspect it
10099 herself. But as it was, such a notion had scarcely ever entered her
10100 head, except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could not help
10101 believing herself the nicest observer of the two;--she watched his
10102 eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought only of his behaviour;--and while his
10103 looks of anxious solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and
10104 throat, the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
10105 entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could discover in
10106 them the quick feelings, and needless alarm of a lover.
10107
10108 Two delightful twilight walks on the third and fourth evenings of her
10109 being there, not merely on the dry gravel of the shrubbery, but all
10110 over the grounds, and especially in the most distant parts of them,
10111 where there was something more of wildness than in the rest, where the
10112 trees were the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
10113 had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting in her wet
10114 shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold so violent as, though for a
10115 day or two trifled with or denied, would force itself by increasing
10116 ailments on the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
10117 Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual, were all
10118 declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain in her limbs, and a
10119 cough, and a sore throat, a good night's rest was to cure her entirely;
10120 and it was with difficulty that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went
10121 to bed, to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
10122
10123
10124
10125 CHAPTER 43
10126
10127
10128 Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time; to every inquiry
10129 replied that she was better, and tried to prove herself so, by engaging
10130 in her accustomary employments. But a day spent in sitting shivering
10131 over the fire with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read, or
10132 in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak much in favour of
10133 her amendment; and when, at last, she went early to bed, more and more
10134 indisposed, Colonel Brandon was only astonished at her sister's
10135 composure, who, though attending and nursing her the whole day, against
10136 Marianne's inclination, and forcing proper medicines on her at night,
10137 trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty and efficacy of sleep, and
10138 felt no real alarm.
10139
10140 A very restless and feverish night, however, disappointed the
10141 expectation of both; and when Marianne, after persisting in rising,
10142 confessed herself unable to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her
10143 bed, Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice, of sending
10144 for the Palmers' apothecary.
10145
10146 He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging Miss Dashwood to
10147 expect that a very few days would restore her sister to health, yet, by
10148 pronouncing her disorder to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the
10149 word "infection" to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
10150 on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined from the
10151 first to think Marianne's complaint more serious than Elinor, now
10152 looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report, and confirming Charlotte's
10153 fears and caution, urged the necessity of her immediate removal with
10154 her infant; and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as
10155 idle, found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great to be
10156 withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on; and within an hour
10157 after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off, with her little boy and his
10158 nurse, for the house of a near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a
10159 few miles on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised, at
10160 her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two; and whither she was
10161 almost equally urgent with her mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings,
10162 however, with a kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
10163 declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland as long as
10164 Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring, by her own attentive care,
10165 to supply to her the place of the mother she had taken her from; and
10166 Elinor found her on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
10167 desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her better
10168 experience in nursing, of material use.
10169
10170 Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature of her malady, and
10171 feeling herself universally ill, could no longer hope that tomorrow
10172 would find her recovered; and the idea of what tomorrow would have
10173 produced, but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe; for
10174 on that day they were to have begun their journey home; and, attended
10175 the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings, were to have taken their
10176 mother by surprise on the following forenoon. The little she said was
10177 all in lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried to
10178 raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN really believed
10179 herself, that it would be a very short one.
10180
10181 The next day produced little or no alteration in the state of the
10182 patient; she certainly was not better, and, except that there was no
10183 amendment, did not appear worse. Their party was now farther reduced;
10184 for Mr. Palmer, though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
10185 and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be frightened away
10186 by his wife, was persuaded at last by Colonel Brandon to perform his
10187 promise of following her; and while he was preparing to go, Colonel
10188 Brandon himself, with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
10189 likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings interposed most
10190 acceptably; for to send the Colonel away while his love was in so much
10191 uneasiness on her sister's account, would be to deprive them both, she
10192 thought, of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once that his
10193 stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself, that she should want him to
10194 play at piquet of an evening, while Miss Dashwood was above with her
10195 sister, &c. she urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was
10196 gratifying the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
10197 long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's entreaty was
10198 warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed to feel a relief to himself,
10199 in leaving behind him a person so well able to assist or advise Miss
10200 Dashwood in any emergence.
10201
10202 Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all these arrangements.
10203 She knew not that she had been the means of sending the owners of
10204 Cleveland away, in about seven days from the time of their arrival. It
10205 gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer; and as it
10206 gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned her name.
10207
10208 Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure, and her
10209 situation continued, with little variation, the same. Mr. Harris, who
10210 attended her every day, still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and
10211 Miss Dashwood was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
10212 was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined very early
10213 in the seizure that Marianne would never get over it, and Colonel
10214 Brandon, who was chiefly of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's
10215 forebodings, was not in a state of mind to resist their influence. He
10216 tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different judgment of
10217 the apothecary seemed to render absurd; but the many hours of each day
10218 in which he was left entirely alone, were but too favourable for the
10219 admission of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from his
10220 mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
10221
10222 On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy anticipations of
10223 both were almost done away; for when Mr. Harris arrived, he declared
10224 his patient materially better. Her pulse was much stronger, and every
10225 symptom more favourable than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed
10226 in every pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that in her
10227 letters to her mother, she had pursued her own judgment rather than her
10228 friend's, in making very light of the indisposition which delayed them
10229 at Cleveland; and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
10230 to travel.
10231
10232 But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.-- Towards the
10233 evening Marianne became ill again, growing more heavy, restless, and
10234 uncomfortable than before. Her sister, however, still sanguine, was
10235 willing to attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue of
10236 having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully administering the
10237 cordials prescribed, saw her, with satisfaction, sink at last into a
10238 slumber, from which she expected the most beneficial effects. Her
10239 sleep, though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it, lasted a
10240 considerable time; and anxious to observe the result of it herself, she
10241 resolved to sit with her during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings,
10242 knowing nothing of any change in the patient, went unusually early to
10243 bed; her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
10244 herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained alone with
10245 Marianne.
10246
10247 The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed; and her
10248 sister, who watched, with unremitting attention her continual change of
10249 posture, and heard the frequent but inarticulate sounds of complaint
10250 which passed her lips, was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful
10251 a slumber, when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise in
10252 the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness, cried out,--
10253
10254 "Is mama coming?--"
10255
10256 "Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror, and assisting
10257 Marianne to lie down again, "but she will be here, I hope, before it is
10258 long. It is a great way, you know, from hence to Barton."
10259
10260 "But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne, in the same
10261 hurried manner. "I shall never see her, if she goes by London."
10262
10263 Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not quite herself, and, while
10264 attempting to soothe her, eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and
10265 quicker than ever! and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her
10266 alarm increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending instantly
10267 for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger to Barton for her mother.
10268 To consult with Colonel Brandon on the best means of effecting the
10269 latter, was a thought which immediately followed the resolution of its
10270 performance; and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place by
10271 her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room, where she knew he
10272 was generally to be found at a much later hour than the present.
10273
10274 It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her difficulties were
10275 immediately before him. Her fears, he had no courage, no confidence to
10276 attempt the removal of:--he listened to them in silent despondence;--but
10277 her difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness that
10278 seemed to speak the occasion, and the service pre-arranged in his mind,
10279 he offered himself as the messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood.
10280 Elinor made no resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
10281 with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went to hurry off his
10282 servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and an order for post-horses
10283 directly, she wrote a few lines to her mother.
10284
10285 The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel Brandon--or such
10286 a companion for her mother,--how gratefully was it felt!--a companion
10287 whose judgment would guide, whose attendance must relieve, and whose
10288 friendship might soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons
10289 COULD be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
10290 would lessen it.
10291
10292 HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all the firmness of a
10293 collected mind, made every necessary arrangement with the utmost
10294 despatch, and calculated with exactness the time in which she might
10295 look for his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind. The
10296 horses arrived, even before they were expected, and Colonel Brandon
10297 only pressing her hand with a look of solemnity, and a few words spoken
10298 too low to reach her ear, hurried into the carriage. It was then about
10299 twelve o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait for
10300 the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her the rest of the
10301 night. It was a night of almost equal suffering to both. Hour after
10302 hour passed away in sleepless pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and
10303 in the most cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared. Her
10304 apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all her former
10305 security; and the servant who sat up with her, for she would not allow
10306 Mrs. Jennings to be called, only tortured her more, by hints of what
10307 her mistress had always thought.
10308
10309 Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals, fixed incoherently on her
10310 mother, and whenever she mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the
10311 heart of poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled with
10312 so many days of illness, and wretched for some immediate relief,
10313 fancied that all relief might soon be in vain, that every thing had
10314 been delayed too long, and pictured to herself her suffering mother
10315 arriving too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
10316
10317 She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris, or if HE could
10318 not come, for some other advice, when the former--but not till after
10319 five o'clock--arrived. His opinion, however, made some little amends
10320 for his delay, for though acknowledging a very unexpected and
10321 unpleasant alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger to
10322 be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh mode of treatment
10323 must procure, with a confidence which, in a lesser degree, was
10324 communicated to Elinor. He promised to call again in the course of
10325 three or four hours, and left both the patient and her anxious
10326 attendant more composed than he had found them.
10327
10328 With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not being called to
10329 their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the morning of what had passed.
10330 Her former apprehensions, now with greater reason restored, left her no
10331 doubt of the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor, her
10332 conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her to offer the
10333 comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved. The rapid decay, the
10334 early death of a girl so young, so lovely as Marianne, must have struck
10335 a less interested person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
10336 she had other claims. She had been for three months her companion, was
10337 still under her care, and she was known to have been greatly injured,
10338 and long unhappy. The distress of her sister too, particularly a
10339 favourite, was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
10340 considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what Charlotte was to
10341 herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings was very sincere.
10342
10343 Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--but he came to be
10344 disappointed in his hopes of what the last would produce. His
10345 medicines had failed;--the fever was unabated; and Marianne only more
10346 quiet--not more herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching
10347 all, and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call in
10348 further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had still something
10349 more to try, some more fresh application, of whose success he was as
10350 confident as the last, and his visit concluded with encouraging
10351 assurances which reached the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss
10352 Dashwood. She was calm, except when she thought of her mother; but she
10353 was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued till noon,
10354 scarcely stirring from her sister's bed, her thoughts wandering from
10355 one image of grief, one suffering friend to another, and her spirits
10356 oppressed to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings, who
10357 scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger of this attack to the
10358 many weeks of previous indisposition which Marianne's disappointment
10359 had brought on. Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
10360 gave fresh misery to her reflections.
10361
10362 About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a dread of
10363 disappointment which for some time kept her silent, even to her
10364 friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive a slight amendment in her
10365 sister's pulse;--she waited, watched, and examined it again and
10366 again;--and at last, with an agitation more difficult to bury under
10367 exterior calmness, than all her foregoing distress, ventured to
10368 communicate her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
10369 to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her young friend from
10370 indulging a thought of its continuance;--and Elinor, conning over every
10371 injunction of distrust, told herself likewise not to hope. But it was
10372 too late. Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious
10373 flutter, she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
10374 Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom yet blessed her.
10375 Others even arose to confirm it. Her breath, her skin, her lips, all
10376 flattered Elinor with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes
10377 on her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and hope now
10378 oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no moment of tranquillity
10379 till the arrival of Mr. Harris at four o'clock;--when his assurances,
10380 his felicitations on a recovery in her sister even surpassing his
10381 expectation, gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
10382
10383 Marianne was in every respect materially better, and he declared her
10384 entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings, perhaps satisfied with the
10385 partial justification of her forebodings which had been found in their
10386 late alarm, allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
10387 with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness, the
10388 probability of an entire recovery.
10389
10390 Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a different kind, and led
10391 to any thing rather than to gaiety. Marianne restored to life, health,
10392 friends, and to her doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with
10393 sensations of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent
10394 gratitude;--but it led to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
10395 no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction, silent and
10396 strong.
10397
10398 She continued by the side of her sister, with little intermission the
10399 whole afternoon, calming every fear, satisfying every inquiry of her
10400 enfeebled spirits, supplying every succour, and watching almost every
10401 look and every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
10402 in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--but when she
10403 saw, on her frequent and minute examination, that every symptom of
10404 recovery continued, and saw Marianne at six o'clock sink into a quiet,
10405 steady, and to all appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every
10406 doubt.
10407
10408 The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon might be expected
10409 back. At ten o'clock, she trusted, or at least not much later her
10410 mother would be relieved from the dreadful suspense in which she must
10411 now be travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
10412 less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress of time which
10413 yet kept them in ignorance!
10414
10415 At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep, she joined
10416 Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea. Of breakfast she had been
10417 kept by her fears, and of dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating
10418 much;--and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings of
10419 content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome. Mrs. Jennings
10420 would have persuaded her, at its conclusion, to take some rest before
10421 her mother's arrival, and allow HER to take her place by Marianne; but
10422 Elinor had no sense of fatigue, no capability of sleep at that moment
10423 about her, and she was not to be kept away from her sister an
10424 unnecessary instant. Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs
10425 into the sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
10426 left her there again to her charge and her thoughts, and retired to her
10427 own room to write letters and sleep.
10428
10429 The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared round the house, and
10430 the rain beat against the windows; but Elinor, all happiness within,
10431 regarded it not. Marianne slept through every blast; and the
10432 travellers--they had a rich reward in store, for every present
10433 inconvenience.
10434
10435 The clock struck eight. Had it been ten, Elinor would have been
10436 convinced that at that moment she heard a carriage driving up to the
10437 house; and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite of the
10438 ALMOST impossibility of their being already come, that she moved into
10439 the adjoining dressing-closet and opened a window shutter, to be
10440 satisfied of the truth. She instantly saw that her ears had not
10441 deceived her. The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in
10442 view. By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it to be
10443 drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the excess of her poor
10444 mother's alarm, gave some explanation to such unexpected rapidity.
10445
10446 Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult to be calm, as at
10447 that moment. The knowledge of what her mother must be feeling as the
10448 carriage stopt at the door--of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her
10449 despair!--and of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
10450 impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done was to be speedy;
10451 and, therefore staying only till she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid
10452 with her sister, she hurried down stairs.
10453
10454 The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along an inner lobby,
10455 assured her that they were already in the house. She rushed to the
10456 drawing-room,--she entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
10457
10458
10459
10460 CHAPTER 44
10461
10462
10463 Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at the sight of him, obeyed
10464 the first impulse of her heart in turning instantly to quit the room,
10465 and her hand was already on the lock, when its action was suspended by
10466 his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather of command than
10467 supplication,
10468
10469 "Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--I entreat you to
10470 stay."
10471
10472 "No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay. Your business
10473 cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose, forgot to tell you that
10474 Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
10475
10476 "Had they told me," he cried with vehemence, "that Mr. Palmer and all
10477 his relations were at the devil, it would not have turned me from the
10478 door. My business is with you, and only you."
10479
10480 "With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--be quick--and if you
10481 can--less violent."
10482
10483 "Sit down, and I will be both."
10484
10485 She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility of Colonel
10486 Brandon's arriving and finding her there, came across her. But she had
10487 promised to hear him, and her curiosity no less than her honor was
10488 engaged. After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
10489 prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would best
10490 promote it, she walked silently towards the table, and sat down. He
10491 took the opposite chair, and for half a minute not a word was said by
10492 either.
10493
10494 "Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--"I have no time to
10495 spare."
10496
10497 He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation, and seemed not to
10498 hear her.
10499
10500 "Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment afterwards--"is out
10501 of danger. I heard it from the servant. God be praised!--But is it
10502 true? is it really true?"
10503
10504 Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry with yet greater
10505 eagerness.
10506
10507 "For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger, or is she not?"
10508
10509 "We hope she is."
10510
10511 He rose up, and walked across the room.
10512
10513 "Had I known as much half an hour ago--But since I AM here,"--speaking
10514 with a forced vivacity as he returned to his seat--"what does it
10515 signify?--For once, Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time,
10516 perhaps--let us be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for
10517 gaiety.-- Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his
10518 cheeks--"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
10519
10520 Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever. She began to
10521 think that he must be in liquor;--the strangeness of such a visit, and
10522 of such manners, seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this
10523 impression she immediately rose, saying,
10524
10525 "Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return to Combe--I am not
10526 at leisure to remain with you longer.-- Whatever your business may be
10527 with me, it will be better recollected and explained to-morrow."
10528
10529 "I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile, and a voice
10530 perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.-- A pint of porter with my cold
10531 beef at Marlborough was enough to over-set me."
10532
10533 "At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at a loss to understand
10534 what he would be at.
10535
10536 "Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock, and the only ten
10537 minutes I have spent out of my chaise since that time procured me a
10538 nuncheon at Marlborough."
10539
10540 The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence of his eye as he
10541 spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever other unpardonable folly might
10542 bring him to Cleveland, he was not brought there by intoxication, she
10543 said, after a moment's recollection,
10544
10545 "Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly DO--that after what
10546 has passed--your coming here in this manner, and forcing yourself upon
10547 my notice, requires a very particular excuse.--What is it, that you
10548 mean by it?"--
10549
10550 "I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can, to make you hate me
10551 one degree less than you do NOW. I mean to offer some kind of
10552 explanation, some kind of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart
10553 to you, and by convincing you, that though I have been always a
10554 blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain something like
10555 forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
10556
10557 "Is this the real reason of your coming?"
10558
10559 "Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth which brought all
10560 the former Willoughby to her remembrance, and in spite of herself made
10561 her think him sincere.
10562
10563 "If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--for Marianne DOES--she
10564 has LONG forgiven you."
10565
10566 "Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.-- "Then she has forgiven
10567 me before she ought to have done it. But she shall forgive me again,
10568 and on more reasonable grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
10569
10570 Elinor bowed her assent.
10571
10572 "I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation on her side, and
10573 thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU may have accounted for my
10574 behaviour to your sister, or what diabolical motive you may have
10575 imputed to me.-- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
10576 worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing. When I first
10577 became intimate in your family, I had no other intention, no other view
10578 in the acquaintance than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged
10579 to remain in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
10580 Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners could not but
10581 please me; and her behaviour to me almost from the first, was of a
10582 kind--It is astonishing, when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE
10583 was, that my heart should have been so insensible! But at first I must
10584 confess, my vanity only was elevated by it. Careless of her happiness,
10585 thinking only of my own amusement, giving way to feelings which I had
10586 always been too much in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every
10587 means in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any design
10588 of returning her affection."
10589
10590 Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him with the most
10591 angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
10592
10593 "It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby, for you to relate, or for me
10594 to listen any longer. Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by
10595 any thing.-- Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on the
10596 subject."
10597
10598 "I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied, "My fortune was
10599 never large, and I had always been expensive, always in the habit of
10600 associating with people of better income than myself. Every year since
10601 my coming of age, or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and
10602 though the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free; yet
10603 that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant, it had been for
10604 some time my intention to re-establish my circumstances by marrying a
10605 woman of fortune. To attach myself to your sister, therefore, was not
10606 a thing to be thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness,
10607 cruelty--which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours, Miss
10608 Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting in this manner,
10609 trying to engage her regard, without a thought of returning it.--But
10610 one thing may be said for me: even in that horrid state of selfish
10611 vanity, I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated, because I
10612 did not THEN know what it was to love. But have I ever known it?--Well
10613 may it be doubted; for, had I really loved, could I have sacrificed my
10614 feelings to vanity, to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have
10615 sacrificed hers?-- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
10616 which her affection and her society would have deprived of all its
10617 horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence, lost every thing that
10618 could make it a blessing."
10619
10620 "You did then," said Elinor, a little softened, "believe yourself at
10621 one time attached to her?"
10622
10623 "To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood such
10624 tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have done it?--Yes, I
10625 found myself, by insensible degrees, sincerely fond of her; and the
10626 happiest hours of my life were what I spent with her when I felt my
10627 intentions were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless. Even
10628 THEN, however, when fully determined on paying my addresses to her, I
10629 allowed myself most improperly to put off, from day to day, the moment
10630 of doing it, from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement while my
10631 circumstances were so greatly embarrassed. I will not reason here--nor
10632 will I stop for YOU to expatiate on the absurdity, and the worse than
10633 absurdity, of scrupling to engage my faith where my honour was already
10634 bound. The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool, providing with
10635 great circumspection for a possible opportunity of making myself
10636 contemptible and wretched for ever. At last, however, my resolution
10637 was taken, and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
10638 to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her, and openly
10639 assure her of an affection which I had already taken such pains to
10640 display. But in the interim--in the interim of the very few hours that
10641 were to pass, before I could have an opportunity of speaking with her
10642 in private--a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
10643 all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery took
10644 place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith had somehow or
10645 other been informed, I imagine by some distant relation, whose interest
10646 it was to deprive me of her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I
10647 need not explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
10648 heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular intimacy--you
10649 have probably heard the whole story long ago."
10650
10651 "I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise, and hardening her heart
10652 anew against any compassion for him, "I have heard it all. And how you
10653 will explain away any part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I
10654 confess is beyond my comprehension."
10655
10656 "Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received the account.
10657 Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge that her situation and her
10658 character ought to have been respected by me. I do not mean to justify
10659 myself, but at the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have
10660 nothing to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
10661 and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint. If the violence of
10662 her passions, the weakness of her understanding--I do not mean,
10663 however, to defend myself. Her affection for me deserved better
10664 treatment, and I often, with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness
10665 which, for a very short time, had the power of creating any return. I
10666 wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured more than
10667 herself; and I have injured one, whose affection for me--(may I say
10668 it?) was scarcely less warm than hers; and whose mind--Oh! how
10669 infinitely superior!"--
10670
10671 "Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate girl--I must say
10672 it, unpleasant to me as the discussion of such a subject may well
10673 be--your indifference is no apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do
10674 not think yourself excused by any weakness, any natural defect of
10675 understanding on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
10676 You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself in
10677 Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay, always happy, she was
10678 reduced to the extremest indigence."
10679
10680 "But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly replied; "I did not
10681 recollect that I had omitted to give her my direction; and common sense
10682 might have told her how to find it out."
10683
10684 "Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
10685
10686 "She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion may be
10687 guessed. The purity of her life, the formality of her notions, her
10688 ignorance of the world--every thing was against me. The matter itself
10689 I could not deny, and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
10690 previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my conduct in
10691 general, and was moreover discontented with the very little attention,
10692 the very little portion of my time that I had bestowed on her, in my
10693 present visit. In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
10694 might have saved myself. In the height of her morality, good woman!
10695 she offered to forgive the past, if I would marry Eliza. That could
10696 not be--and I was formally dismissed from her favour and her house.
10697 The night following this affair--I was to go the next morning--was
10698 spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct should be. The
10699 struggle was great--but it ended too soon. My affection for Marianne,
10700 my thorough conviction of her attachment to me--it was all insufficient
10701 to outweigh that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
10702 ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally inclined to
10703 feel, and expensive society had increased. I had reason to believe
10704 myself secure of my present wife, if I chose to address her, and I
10705 persuaded myself to think that nothing else in common prudence remained
10706 for me to do. A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
10707 Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day; some
10708 apology was therefore necessary for my breaking this engagement. But
10709 whether I should write this apology, or deliver it in person, was a
10710 point of long debate. To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and
10711 I even doubted whether I could see her again, and keep to my
10712 resolution. In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
10713 as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw her miserable,
10714 and left her miserable--and left her hoping never to see her again."
10715
10716 "Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor, reproachfully; "a note
10717 would have answered every purpose.-- Why was it necessary to call?"
10718
10719 "It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear to leave the
10720 country in a manner that might lead you, or the rest of the
10721 neighbourhood, to suspect any part of what had really passed between
10722 Mrs. Smith and myself--and I resolved therefore on calling at the
10723 cottage, in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister, however,
10724 was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter, I found her alone.
10725 You were all gone I do not know where. I had left her only the evening
10726 before, so fully, so firmly resolved within my self on doing right! A
10727 few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever; and I remember how
10728 happy, how gay were my spirits, as I walked from the cottage to
10729 Allenham, satisfied with myself, delighted with every body! But in
10730 this, our last interview of friendship, I approached her with a sense
10731 of guilt that almost took from me the power of dissembling. Her
10732 sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told her that I was
10733 obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I never shall forget
10734 it--united too with such reliance, such confidence in me!--Oh,
10735 God!--what a hard-hearted rascal I was!"
10736
10737 They were both silent for a few moments. Elinor first spoke.
10738
10739 "Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
10740
10741 "I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently; "less than
10742 was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all likelihood much more
10743 than was justified by the future. I cannot think of it.--It won't
10744 do.--Then came your dear mother to torture me farther, with all her
10745 kindness and confidence. Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was
10746 miserable. Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
10747 gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge to myself
10748 for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart, that all my past
10749 sufferings under it are only triumph and exultation to me now. Well, I
10750 went, left all that I loved, and went to those to whom, at best, I was
10751 only indifferent. My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
10752 and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my own reflections
10753 so cheerful--when I looked forward every thing so inviting!--when I
10754 looked back at Barton, the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed
10755 journey!"
10756
10757 He stopped.
10758
10759 "Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him, grew impatient for
10760 his departure, "and this is all?"
10761
10762 "Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?-- That infamous
10763 letter--Did she shew it you?"
10764
10765 "Yes, I saw every note that passed."
10766
10767 "When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did, for I was in
10768 town the whole time,) what I felt is--in the common phrase, not to be
10769 expressed; in a more simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any
10770 emotion--my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
10771 was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer, were she here,
10772 would forbid--a dagger to my heart. To know that Marianne was in town
10773 was--in the same language--a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and
10774 daggers!--what a reproof would she have given me!--her taste, her
10775 opinions--I believe they are better known to me than my own,--and I am
10776 sure they are dearer."
10777
10778 Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes in the course of this
10779 extraordinary conversation, was now softened again;--yet she felt it
10780 her duty to check such ideas in her companion as the last.
10781
10782 "This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that you are married.
10783 Relate only what in your conscience you think necessary for me to hear."
10784
10785 "Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still as dear to her as in
10786 former days, that in spite of the many, many weeks we had been
10787 separated, she was as constant in her own feelings, and as full of
10788 faith in the constancy of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say
10789 awakened, because time and London, business and dissipation, had in
10790 some measure quieted it, and I had been growing a fine hardened
10791 villain, fancying myself indifferent to her, and chusing to fancy that
10792 she too must have become indifferent to me; talking to myself of our
10793 past attachment as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my
10794 shoulders in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
10795 overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then, 'I shall be
10796 heartily glad to hear she is well married.'-- But this note made me
10797 know myself better. I felt that she was infinitely dearer to me than
10798 any other woman in the world, and that I was using her infamously. But
10799 every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey and me. To retreat
10800 was impossible. All that I had to do, was to avoid you both. I sent
10801 no answer to Marianne, intending by that to preserve myself from her
10802 farther notice; and for some time I was even determined not to call in
10803 Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect the air of a
10804 cool, common acquaintance than anything else, I watched you all safely
10805 out of the house one morning, and left my name."
10806
10807 "Watched us out of the house!"
10808
10809 "Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often I watched you, how
10810 often I was on the point of falling in with you. I have entered many a
10811 shop to avoid your sight, as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did
10812 in Bond Street, there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a
10813 glimpse of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
10814 watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing desire to keep
10815 out of your sight, could have separated us so long. I avoided the
10816 Middletons as much as possible, as well as everybody else who was
10817 likely to prove an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being in
10818 town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe, the first day of his
10819 coming, and the day after I had called at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me
10820 to a party, a dance at his house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as
10821 an inducement that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
10822 felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him. The next
10823 morning brought another short note from Marianne--still affectionate,
10824 open, artless, confiding--everything that could make MY conduct most
10825 hateful. I could not answer it. I tried--but could not frame a
10826 sentence. But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
10827 If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it was THEN.
10828 With my head and heart full of your sister, I was forced to play the
10829 happy lover to another woman!--Those three or four weeks were worse
10830 than all. Well, at last, as I need not tell you, you were forced on
10831 me; and what a sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
10832 Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me Willoughby in
10833 such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand to me, asking me for an
10834 explanation, with those bewitching eyes fixed in such speaking
10835 solicitude on my face!--and Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other
10836 hand, looking all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over
10837 now.-- Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
10838 but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white as
10839 death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--the last
10840 manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid sight!--yet when I
10841 thought of her to-day as really dying, it was a kind of comfort to me
10842 to imagine that I knew exactly how she would appear to those, who saw
10843 her last in this world. She was before me, constantly before me, as I
10844 travelled, in the same look and hue."
10845
10846 A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded. Willoughby first
10847 rousing himself, broke it thus:
10848
10849 "Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister is certainly better,
10850 certainly out of danger?"
10851
10852 "We are assured of it."
10853
10854 "Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
10855
10856 "But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter; have you any thing to
10857 say about that?"
10858
10859 "Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister wrote to me again, you
10860 know, the very next morning. You saw what she said. I was
10861 breakfasting at the Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was
10862 brought to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch Sophia's
10863 eye before it caught mine--and its size, the elegance of the paper, the
10864 hand-writing altogether, immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague
10865 report had reached her before of my attachment to some young lady in
10866 Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation the preceding
10867 evening had marked who the young lady was, and made her more jealous
10868 than ever. Affecting that air of playfulness, therefore, which is
10869 delightful in a woman one loves, she opened the letter directly,
10870 and read its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
10871 She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could have
10872 borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it must be appeased.
10873 And, in short--what do you think of my wife's style of
10874 letter-writing?--delicate--tender--truly feminine--was it not?"
10875
10876 "Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
10877
10878 "Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying such sentences as
10879 I was ashamed to put my name to. The original was all her own--her own
10880 happy thoughts and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were
10881 engaged, every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
10882 talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words, her money
10883 was necessary to me, and in a situation like mine, any thing was to be
10884 done to prevent a rupture. And after all, what did it signify to my
10885 character in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
10886 my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end. My business
10887 was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether I did it with a bow or a
10888 bluster was of little importance.-- 'I am ruined for ever in their
10889 opinion--' said I to myself--'I am shut out for ever from their
10890 society, they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter will
10891 only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were my reasonings, as,
10892 in a sort of desperate carelessness, I copied my wife's words, and
10893 parted with the last relics of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily
10894 they were all in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their
10895 existence, and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up, and
10896 could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too I had always
10897 carried about me in the same pocket-book, which was now searched by
10898 Madam with the most ingratiating virulence,--the dear lock--all, every
10899 memento was torn from me."
10900
10901 "You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable," said Elinor, while
10902 her voice, in spite of herself, betrayed her compassionate emotion;
10903 "you ought not to speak in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my
10904 sister. You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you. Your
10905 wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect, at least. She
10906 must be attached to you, or she would not have married you. To treat
10907 her with unkindness, to speak of her slightingly is no atonement to
10908 Marianne--nor can I suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
10909
10910 "Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.-- "She does
10911 not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no regard for her when we
10912 married.--Well, married we were, and came down to Combe Magna to be
10913 happy, and afterwards returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity
10914 me, Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?-- Am I--be
10915 it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion than I was
10916 before?--My intentions were not always wrong. Have I explained away
10917 any part of my guilt?"
10918
10919 "Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.-- You have proved
10920 yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I had believed you. You have
10921 proved your heart less wicked, much less wicked. But I hardly
10922 know--the misery that you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have
10923 made it worse."
10924
10925 "Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered, what I have been
10926 telling you?--Let me be a little lightened too in her opinion as well
10927 as in yours. You tell me that she has forgiven me already. Let me be
10928 able to fancy that a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present
10929 feelings, will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
10930 gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery and my
10931 penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant to her, and if
10932 you will, that at this moment she is dearer to me than ever."
10933
10934 "I will tell her all that is necessary to what may comparatively be
10935 called, your justification. But you have not explained to me the
10936 particular reason of your coming now, nor how you heard of her illness."
10937
10938 "Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir John Middleton, and
10939 when he saw who I was--for the first time these two months--he spoke to
10940 me.--That he had cut me ever since my marriage, I had seen without
10941 surprise or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest, stupid
10942 soul, full of indignation against me, and concern for your sister,
10943 could not resist the temptation of telling me what he knew ought
10944 to--though probably he did not think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As
10945 bluntly as he could speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne
10946 Dashwood was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
10947 morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger most
10948 imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright, &c.--I was too much
10949 shocked to be able to pass myself off as insensible even to the
10950 undiscerning Sir John. His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer;
10951 and so much of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted, he
10952 almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an old promise
10953 about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing that your sister was
10954 dying--and dying too, believing me the greatest villain upon earth,
10955 scorning, hating me in her latest moments--for how could I tell what
10956 horrid projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I was sure
10957 would represent me as capable of any thing-- What I felt was
10958 dreadful!--My resolution was soon made, and at eight o'clock this
10959 morning I was in my carriage. Now you know all."
10960
10961 Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed on the
10962 irreparable injury which too early an independence and its consequent
10963 habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury, had made in the mind, the
10964 character, the happiness, of a man who, to every advantage of person
10965 and talents, united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
10966 feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him extravagant and
10967 vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him cold-hearted and selfish.
10968 Vanity, while seeking its own guilty triumph at the expense of another,
10969 had involved him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
10970 its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed. Each faulty
10971 propensity in leading him to evil, had led him likewise to punishment.
10972 The attachment, from which against honour, against feeling, against
10973 every better interest he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no
10974 longer allowable, governed every thought; and the connection, for the
10975 sake of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister to misery,
10976 was likely to prove a source of unhappiness to himself of a far more
10977 incurable nature. From a reverie of this kind she was recalled at the
10978 end of some minutes by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie
10979 at least equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and
10980 said--
10981
10982 "There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
10983
10984 "Are you going back to town?"
10985
10986 "No--to Combe Magna. I have business there; from thence to town in a
10987 day or two. Good bye."
10988
10989 He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give him hers;--he
10990 pressed it with affection.
10991
10992 "And you DO think something better of me than you did?"--said he,
10993 letting it fall, and leaning against the mantel-piece as if forgetting
10994 he was to go.
10995
10996 Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave, pitied, wished him
10997 well--was even interested in his happiness--and added some gentle
10998 counsel as to the behaviour most likely to promote it. His answer was
10999 not very encouraging.
11000
11001 "As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world as well as I can.
11002 Domestic happiness is out of the question. If, however, I am allowed
11003 to think that you and yours feel an interest in my fate and actions, it
11004 may be the means--it may put me on my guard--at least, it may be
11005 something to live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
11006 Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
11007
11008 Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
11009
11010 "Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall now go away and live
11011 in dread of one event."
11012
11013 "What do you mean?"
11014
11015 "Your sister's marriage."
11016
11017 "You are very wrong. She can never be more lost to you than she is
11018 now."
11019
11020 "But she will be gained by some one else. And if that some one should
11021 be the very he whom, of all others, I could least bear--but I will not
11022 stay to rob myself of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing that
11023 where I have most injured I can least forgive. Good bye,--God bless
11024 you!"
11025
11026 And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
11027
11028
11029
11030 CHAPTER 45
11031
11032
11033 Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time even after the
11034 sound of his carriage had died away, remained too much oppressed by a
11035 crowd of ideas, widely differing in themselves, but of which sadness
11036 was the general result, to think even of her sister.
11037
11038 Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had abhorred as the most
11039 worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite of all his faults, excited a
11040 degree of commiseration for the sufferings produced by them, which made
11041 her think of him as now separated for ever from her family, with a
11042 tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she soon acknowledged
11043 within herself--to his wishes than to his merits. She felt that his
11044 influence over her mind was heightened by circumstances which ought not
11045 in reason to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction, that
11046 open, affectionate, and lively manner which it was no merit to possess;
11047 and by that still ardent love for Marianne, which it was not even
11048 innocent to indulge. But she felt that it was so, long, long before
11049 she could feel his influence less.
11050
11051 When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne, she found her
11052 just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet a sleep to the extent of
11053 her hopes. Elinor's heart was full. The past, the present, the
11054 future, Willoughby's visit, Marianne's safety, and her mother's
11055 expected arrival, threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
11056 which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made her only fearful
11057 of betraying herself to her sister. Short was the time, however, in
11058 which that fear could affect her, for within half an hour after
11059 Willoughby's leaving the house, she was again called down stairs by the
11060 sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her mother from every
11061 unnecessary moment's horrible suspense, she ran immediately into the
11062 hall, and reached the outward door just in time to receive and support
11063 her as she entered it.
11064
11065 Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the house had produced
11066 almost the conviction of Marianne's being no more, had no voice to
11067 inquire after her, no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither
11068 for salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--and her
11069 mother, catching it with all her usual warmth, was in a moment as much
11070 overcome by her happiness, as she had been before by her fears. She
11071 was supported into the drawing-room between her daughter and her
11072 friend;--and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable to
11073 speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her at intervals
11074 to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look which spoke at once her
11075 gratitude, and her conviction of his sharing with herself in the bliss
11076 of the moment. He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
11077 her own.
11078
11079 As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself, to see Marianne was her
11080 first desire; and in two minutes she was with her beloved child,
11081 rendered dearer to her than ever by absence, unhappiness, and danger.
11082 Elinor's delight, as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only
11083 checked by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther
11084 sleep;--but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent, when
11085 the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne, satisfied in knowing
11086 her mother was near her, and conscious of being too weak for
11087 conversation, submitted readily to the silence and quiet prescribed by
11088 every nurse around her. Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night;
11089 and Elinor, in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed. But
11090 the rest, which one night entirely sleepless, and many hours of the
11091 most wearing anxiety seemed to make requisite, was kept off by
11092 irritation of spirits. Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now
11093 allowed herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she would
11094 not but have heard his vindication for the world, and now blamed, now
11095 acquitted herself for having judged him so harshly before. But her
11096 promise of relating it to her sister was invariably painful. She
11097 dreaded the performance of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne
11098 might be; doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever be
11099 happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby a widower.
11100 Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself, felt that to HIS
11101 sufferings and his constancy far more than to his rival's, the reward
11102 of her sister was due, and wished any thing rather than Mrs.
11103 Willoughby's death.
11104
11105 The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been much softened
11106 to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm; for so great was her
11107 uneasiness about Marianne, that she had already determined to set out
11108 for Cleveland on that very day, without waiting for any further
11109 intelligence, and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
11110 that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch Margaret away,
11111 as her mother was unwilling to take her where there might be infection.
11112
11113 Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant cheerfulness of
11114 Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved her to be, as she repeatedly
11115 declared herself, one of the happiest women in the world. Elinor could
11116 not hear the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
11117 wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward. But Mrs.
11118 Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account of her own disappointment
11119 which Elinor had sent her, was led away by the exuberance of her joy to
11120 think only of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
11121 from a danger in which, as she now began to feel, her own mistaken
11122 judgment in encouraging the unfortunate attachment to Willoughby, had
11123 contributed to place her;--and in her recovery she had yet another
11124 source of joy unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her, as
11125 soon as any opportunity of private conference between them occurred.
11126
11127 "At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet know all my
11128 happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne. He has told me so himself."
11129
11130 Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained, surprised and
11131 not surprised, was all silent attention.
11132
11133 "You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should wonder at your
11134 composure now. Had I sat down to wish for any possible good to my
11135 family, I should have fixed on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as
11136 the object most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
11137 happy with him of the two."
11138
11139 Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so, because
11140 satisfied that none founded on an impartial consideration of their age,
11141 characters, or feelings, could be given;--but her mother must always be
11142 carried away by her imagination on any interesting subject, and
11143 therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
11144
11145 "He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled. It came
11146 out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may well believe, could
11147 talk of nothing but my child;--he could not conceal his distress; I saw
11148 that it equalled my own, and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship,
11149 as the world now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
11150 not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible feelings,
11151 made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant, affection for
11152 Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since the first moment of
11153 seeing her."
11154
11155 Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language, not the professions
11156 of Colonel Brandon, but the natural embellishments of her mother's
11157 active fancy, which fashioned every thing delightful to her as it chose.
11158
11159 "His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything that Willoughby
11160 ever felt or feigned, as much more warm, as more sincere or
11161 constant--which ever we are to call it--has subsisted through all the
11162 knowledge of dear Marianne's unhappy prepossession for that worthless
11163 young man!--and without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
11164 he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--such openness,
11165 such sincerity!--no one can be deceived in HIM."
11166
11167 "Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor, "as an excellent man, is
11168 well established."
11169
11170 "I know it is,"--replied her mother seriously, "or after such a warning,
11171 I should be the last to encourage such affection, or even to be pleased
11172 by it. But his coming for me as he did, with such active, such ready
11173 friendship, is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
11174
11175 "His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest on ONE act of
11176 kindness, to which his affection for Marianne, were humanity out of the
11177 case, would have prompted him. To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he
11178 has been long and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
11179 and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired, is very
11180 considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him, that if Marianne
11181 can be happy with him, I shall be as ready as yourself to think our
11182 connection the greatest blessing to us in the world. What answer did
11183 you give him?--Did you allow him to hope?"
11184
11185 "Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him or to myself.
11186 Marianne might at that moment be dying. But he did not ask for hope or
11187 encouragement. His was an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible
11188 effusion to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent. Yet
11189 after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite overcome--that if she
11190 lived, as I trusted she might, my greatest happiness would lie in
11191 promoting their marriage; and since our arrival, since our delightful
11192 security, I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
11193 encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time, I tell him, will
11194 do everything;--Marianne's heart is not to be wasted for ever on such a
11195 man as Willoughby.-- His own merits must soon secure it."
11196
11197 "To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however, you have not yet made
11198 him equally sanguine."
11199
11200 "No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply rooted for any change
11201 in it under a great length of time, and even supposing her heart again
11202 free, is too diffident of himself to believe, that with such a
11203 difference of age and disposition he could ever attach her. There,
11204 however, he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond hers as
11205 to be an advantage, as to make his character and principles fixed;--and
11206 his disposition, I am well convinced, is exactly the very one to make
11207 your sister happy. And his person, his manners too, are all in his
11208 favour. My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not so
11209 handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time, there is something much
11210 more pleasing in his countenance.-- There was always a something,--if
11211 you remember,--in Willoughby's eyes at times, which I did not like."
11212
11213 Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother, without waiting for her
11214 assent, continued,
11215
11216 "And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only more pleasing to
11217 me than Willoughby's ever were, but they are of a kind I well know to
11218 be more solidly attaching to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine
11219 attention to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity is much
11220 more accordant with her real disposition, than the liveliness--often
11221 artificial, and often ill-timed of the other. I am very sure myself,
11222 that had Willoughby turned out as really amiable, as he has proved
11223 himself the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy with
11224 HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
11225
11226 She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree with her, but her
11227 dissent was not heard, and therefore gave no offence.
11228
11229 "At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me," added Mrs.
11230 Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all probability,--for I
11231 hear it is a large village,--indeed there certainly MUST be some small
11232 house or cottage close by, that would suit us quite as well as our
11233 present situation."
11234
11235 Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting her to Delaford!--but
11236 her spirit was stubborn.
11237
11238 "His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know, everybody cares
11239 about THAT;--and though I neither know nor desire to know, what it
11240 really is, I am sure it must be a good one."
11241
11242 Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a third person, and
11243 Elinor withdrew to think it all over in private, to wish success to her
11244 friend, and yet in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
11245
11246
11247
11248 CHAPTER 46
11249
11250
11251 Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind, had not been long
11252 enough to make her recovery slow; and with youth, natural strength, and
11253 her mother's presence in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her
11254 to remove, within four days after the arrival of the latter, into Mrs.
11255 Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own particular request, for
11256 she was impatient to pour forth her thanks to him for fetching her
11257 mother, Colonel Brandon was invited to visit her.
11258
11259 His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered looks, and in
11260 receiving the pale hand which she immediately held out to him, was
11261 such, as, in Elinor's conjecture, must arise from something more than
11262 his affection for Marianne, or the consciousness of its being known to
11263 others; and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
11264 complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable recurrence of many
11265 past scenes of misery to his mind, brought back by that resemblance
11266 between Marianne and Eliza already acknowledged, and now strengthened
11267 by the hollow eye, the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
11268 and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
11269
11270 Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than her daughter, but
11271 with a mind very differently influenced, and therefore watching to very
11272 different effect, saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
11273 from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in the actions
11274 and words of Marianne she persuaded herself to think that something
11275 more than gratitude already dawned.
11276
11277 At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing visibly stronger
11278 every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood, urged equally by her own and her
11279 daughter's wishes, began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER
11280 measures depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could not
11281 quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel Brandon was soon
11282 brought, by their united request, to consider his own abode there as
11283 equally determinate, if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs.
11284 Jennings's united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed on to
11285 accept the use of his carriage on her journey back, for the better
11286 accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel, at the joint
11287 invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings, whose active good-nature
11288 made her friendly and hospitable for other people as well as herself,
11289 engaged with pleasure to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the
11290 course of a few weeks.
11291
11292 The day of separation and departure arrived; and Marianne, after taking
11293 so particular and lengthened a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly
11294 grateful, so full of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own
11295 heart from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
11296 Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend, was carefully
11297 assisted by him into the carriage, of which he seemed anxious that she
11298 should engross at least half. Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed,
11299 and the others were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers, and
11300 feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned to her chaise
11301 to take comfort in the gossip of her maid for the loss of her two young
11302 companions; and Colonel Brandon immediately afterwards took his
11303 solitary way to Delaford.
11304
11305 The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne bore her journey
11306 on both, without essential fatigue. Every thing that the most zealous
11307 affection, the most solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
11308 was the office of each watchful companion, and each found their reward
11309 in her bodily ease, and her calmness of spirits. To Elinor, the
11310 observation of the latter was particularly grateful. She, who had seen
11311 her week after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish of
11312 heart which she had neither courage to speak of, nor fortitude to
11313 conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other could equally share, an
11314 apparent composure of mind, which, in being the result as she trusted
11315 of serious reflection, must eventually lead her to contentment and
11316 cheerfulness.
11317
11318 As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered on scenes of which every
11319 field and every tree brought some peculiar, some painful recollection,
11320 she grew silent and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their
11321 notice, sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here, Elinor
11322 could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw, as she assisted
11323 Marianne from the carriage, that she had been crying, she saw only an
11324 emotion too natural in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
11325 and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the whole of her
11326 subsequent manner, she traced the direction of a mind awakened to
11327 reasonable exertion; for no sooner had they entered their common
11328 sitting-room, than Marianne turned her eyes around it with a look of
11329 resolute firmness, as if determined at once to accustom herself to the
11330 sight of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could be
11331 connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed at cheerfulness,
11332 and though a sigh sometimes escaped her, it never passed away without
11333 the atonement of a smile. After dinner she would try her piano-forte.
11334 She went to it; but the music on which her eye first rested was an
11335 opera, procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
11336 favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name in his
11337 hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head, put the music
11338 aside, and after running over the keys for a minute, complained of
11339 feebleness in her fingers, and closed the instrument again; declaring
11340 however with firmness as she did so, that she should in future practice
11341 much.
11342
11343 The next morning produced no abatement in these happy symptoms. On the
11344 contrary, with a mind and body alike strengthened by rest, she looked
11345 and spoke with more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
11346 Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party which would
11347 then be restored, of their mutual pursuits and cheerful society, as the
11348 only happiness worth a wish.
11349
11350 "When the weather is settled, and I have recovered my strength," said
11351 she, "we will take long walks together every day. We will walk to the
11352 farm at the edge of the down, and see how the children go on; we will
11353 walk to Sir John's new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
11354 and we will often go to the old ruins of the Priory, and try to trace its
11355 foundations as far as we are told they once reached. I know we shall
11356 be happy. I know the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to
11357 be later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner I shall
11358 divide every moment between music and reading. I have formed my plan,
11359 and am determined to enter on a course of serious study. Our own
11360 library is too well known to me, to be resorted to for any thing beyond
11361 mere amusement. But there are many works well worth reading at the
11362 Park; and there are others of more modern production which I know I can
11363 borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six hours a-day, I shall
11364 gain in the course of a twelve-month a great deal of instruction which
11365 I now feel myself to want."
11366
11367 Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated so nobly as this;
11368 though smiling to see the same eager fancy which had been leading her
11369 to the extreme of languid indolence and selfish repining, now at work
11370 in introducing excess into a scheme of such rational employment and
11371 virtuous self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
11372 remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled, and feared
11373 she had that to communicate which might again unsettle the mind of
11374 Marianne, and ruin at least for a time this fair prospect of busy
11375 tranquillity. Willing therefore to delay the evil hour, she resolved
11376 to wait till her sister's health were more secure, before she appointed
11377 it. But the resolution was made only to be broken.
11378
11379 Marianne had been two or three days at home, before the weather was
11380 fine enough for an invalid like herself to venture out. But at last a
11381 soft, genial morning appeared; such as might tempt the daughter's
11382 wishes and the mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's
11383 arm, was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue, in
11384 the lane before the house.
11385
11386 The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness of Marianne in an
11387 exercise hitherto untried since her illness required;--and they had
11388 advanced only so far beyond the house as to admit a full view of the
11389 hill, the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes turned
11390 towards it, Marianne calmly said,
11391
11392 "There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand, "on that projecting
11393 mound,--there I fell; and there I first saw Willoughby."
11394
11395 Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving she added,
11396
11397 "I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain on the
11398 spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--hesitatingly it
11399 was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk of it now, I hope, as I
11400 ought to do."--
11401
11402 Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
11403
11404 "As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that, as far as HE is
11405 concerned. I do not mean to talk to you of what my feelings have been
11406 for him, but what they are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on
11407 one point, if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS acting
11408 a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all, if I could be assured
11409 that he never was so VERY wicked as my fears have sometimes fancied
11410 him, since the story of that unfortunate girl"--
11411
11412 She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words as she answered,
11413
11414 "If you could be assured of that, you think you should be easy."
11415
11416 "Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--for not only is it
11417 horrible to suspect a person, who has been what HE has been to ME, of
11418 such designs,--but what must it make me appear to myself?--What in a
11419 situation like mine, but a most shamefully unguarded affection could
11420 expose me to"--
11421
11422 "How then," asked her sister, "would you account for his behaviour?"
11423
11424 "I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose him, only fickle,
11425 very, very fickle."
11426
11427 Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself on the
11428 eligibility of beginning her story directly, or postponing it till
11429 Marianne were in stronger health;--and they crept on for a few minutes
11430 in silence.
11431
11432 "I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne at last with a
11433 sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections may be no more unpleasant
11434 than my own. He will suffer enough in them."
11435
11436 "Do you compare your conduct with his?"
11437
11438 "No. I compare it with what it ought to have been; I compare it with
11439 yours."
11440
11441 "Our situations have borne little resemblance."
11442
11443 "They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not, my dearest Elinor, let
11444 your kindness defend what I know your judgment must censure. My
11445 illness has made me think-- It has given me leisure and calmness for
11446 serious recollection. Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I
11447 was perfectly able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my own
11448 behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance with him last
11449 autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence towards myself, and want of
11450 kindness to others. I saw that my own feelings had prepared my
11451 sufferings, and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led me
11452 to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been entirely brought on by
11453 myself by such negligence of my own health, as I had felt even at the
11454 time to be wrong. Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
11455 did not know my danger till the danger was removed; but with such
11456 feelings as these reflections gave me, I wonder at my recovery,--wonder
11457 that the very eagerness of my desire to live, to have time for
11458 atonement to my God, and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I
11459 died,--in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse, my
11460 friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful selfishness of my
11461 latter days; who had known all the murmurings of my heart!--How should
11462 I have lived in YOUR remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have
11463 consoled her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself. Whenever
11464 I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected, or some failing
11465 indulged. Every body seemed injured by me. The kindness, the
11466 unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings, I had repaid with ungrateful
11467 contempt. To the Middletons, to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every
11468 common acquaintance even, I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart
11469 hardened against their merits, and a temper irritated by their very
11470 attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them, little as they
11471 deserve, I had given less than their due. But you,--you above all,
11472 above my mother, had been wronged by me. I, and only I, knew your
11473 heart and its sorrows; yet to what did it influence me?--not to any
11474 compassion that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was before
11475 me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate of you and your comfort?
11476 Did I imitate your forbearance, or lessen your restraints, by taking
11477 any part in those offices of general complaisance or particular
11478 gratitude which you had hitherto been left to discharge
11479 alone?--No;--not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I had
11480 believed you at ease, did I turn away from every exertion of duty or
11481 friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow to exist but with me, regretting
11482 only THAT heart which had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for
11483 whom I professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my sake."
11484
11485 Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit; and Elinor,
11486 impatient to soothe, though too honest to flatter, gave her instantly
11487 that praise and support which her frankness and her contrition so well
11488 deserved. Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
11489
11490 "You are very good.--The future must be my proof. I have laid down my
11491 plan, and if I am capable of adhering to it--my feelings shall be
11492 governed and my temper improved. They shall no longer worry others,
11493 nor torture myself. I shall now live solely for my family. You, my
11494 mother, and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me; you will
11495 share my affections entirely between you. From you, from my home, I
11496 shall never again have the smallest incitement to move; and if I do mix
11497 in other society, it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled, my
11498 heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities, the lesser
11499 duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance. As for Willoughby--to
11500 say that I shall soon or that I shall ever forget him, would be idle.
11501 His remembrance can be overcome by no change of circumstances or
11502 opinions. But it shall be regulated, it shall be checked by religion,
11503 by reason, by constant employment."
11504
11505 She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could but know HIS heart,
11506 everything would become easy."
11507
11508 Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting on the propriety or
11509 impropriety of speedily hazarding her narration, without feeling at all
11510 nearer decision than at first, heard this; and perceiving that as
11511 reflection did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
11512 leading to the fact.
11513
11514 She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address; prepared her
11515 anxious listener with caution; related simply and honestly the chief
11516 points on which Willoughby grounded his apology; did justice to his
11517 repentance, and softened only his protestations of present regard.
11518 Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes were fixed on the
11519 ground, and her lips became whiter than even sickness had left them. A
11520 thousand inquiries sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge
11521 one. She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
11522 unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and tears covered
11523 her cheeks.
11524
11525 Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home; and till they
11526 reached the door of the cottage, easily conjecturing what her curiosity
11527 must be though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of nothing
11528 but Willoughby, and their conversation together; and was carefully
11529 minute in every particular of speech and look, where minuteness could
11530 be safely indulged. As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a
11531 kiss of gratitude and these two words just articulate through her
11532 tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and walked slowly up
11533 stairs. Elinor would not attempt to disturb a solitude so reasonable
11534 as what she now sought; and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its
11535 result, and a resolution of reviving the subject again, should Marianne
11536 fail to do it, she turned into the parlour to fulfill her parting
11537 injunction.
11538
11539
11540
11541 CHAPTER 47
11542
11543
11544 Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication of her former
11545 favourite. She rejoiced in his being cleared from some part of his
11546 imputed guilt;--she was sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the
11547 feelings of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore him
11548 with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished, to Marianne. Nothing
11549 could do away the knowledge of what the latter had suffered through his
11550 means, nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza. Nothing
11551 could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem, nor injure the
11552 interests of Colonel Brandon.
11553
11554 Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's story from
11555 himself--had she witnessed his distress, and been under the influence
11556 of his countenance and his manner, it is probable that her compassion
11557 would have been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power, nor in
11558 her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her retailed
11559 explanation, as had at first been called forth in herself. Reflection
11560 had given calmness to her judgment, and sobered her own opinion of
11561 Willoughby's deserts;--she wished, therefore, to declare only the
11562 simple truth, and lay open such facts as were really due to his
11563 character, without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the fancy
11564 astray.
11565
11566 In the evening, when they were all three together, Marianne began
11567 voluntarily to speak of him again;--but that it was not without an
11568 effort, the restless, unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for
11569 some time previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--and her
11570 unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
11571
11572 "I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see every thing--as you
11573 can desire me to do."
11574
11575 Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly with soothing
11576 tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished to hear her sister's
11577 unbiased opinion, by an eager sign, engaged her silence. Marianne
11578 slowly continued--
11579
11580 "It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told me this morning--I have
11581 now heard exactly what I wished to hear."--For some moments her voice
11582 was lost; but recovering herself, she added, and with greater calmness
11583 than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied, I wish for no change. I
11584 never could have been happy with him, after knowing, as sooner or later
11585 I must have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence, no
11586 esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
11587
11588 "I know it--I know it," cried her mother. "Happy with a man of
11589 libertine practices!--With one who so injured the peace of the dearest
11590 of our friends, and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
11591 to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her sensitive
11592 conscience, would have felt all that the conscience of her husband
11593 ought to have felt."
11594
11595 Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
11596
11597 "You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as a good mind and a
11598 sound understanding must consider it; and I dare say you perceive, as
11599 well as myself, not only in this, but in many other circumstances,
11600 reason enough to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
11601 in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which you would have
11602 been poorly supported by an affection, on his side, much less certain.
11603 Had you married, you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
11604 acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares that
11605 self-denial is a word hardly understood by him. His demands and your
11606 inexperience together, on a small, very small income, must have brought
11607 on distresses which would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having
11608 been entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense of honour
11609 and honesty would have led you, I know, when aware of your situation,
11610 to attempt all the economy that would appear to you possible: and,
11611 perhaps, as long as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
11612 you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--and how
11613 little could the utmost of your single management do to stop the ruin
11614 which had begun before your marriage?-- Beyond THAT, had you
11615 endeavoured, however reasonably, to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not
11616 to be feared, that instead of prevailing on feelings so selfish to
11617 consent to it, you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
11618 and made him regret the connection which had involved him in such
11619 difficulties?"
11620
11621 Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word "Selfish?" in a
11622 tone that implied--"do you really think him selfish?"
11623
11624 "The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor, "from the beginning to
11625 the end of the affair, has been grounded on selfishness. It was
11626 selfishness which first made him sport with your affections; which
11627 afterwards, when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession of
11628 it, and which finally carried him from Barton. His own enjoyment, or
11629 his own ease, was, in every particular, his ruling principle."
11630
11631 "It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
11632
11633 "At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he has done. And why
11634 does he regret it?--Because he finds it has not answered towards
11635 himself. It has not made him happy. His circumstances are now
11636 unembarrassed--he suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
11637 that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper than yourself.
11638 But does it follow that had he married you, he would have been
11639 happy?--The inconveniences would have been different. He would then
11640 have suffered under the pecuniary distresses which, because they are
11641 removed, he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife of whose
11642 temper he could make no complaint, but he would have been always
11643 necessitous--always poor; and probably would soon have learned to rank
11644 the innumerable comforts of a clear estate and good income as of far
11645 more importance, even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a
11646 wife."
11647
11648 "I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I have nothing to
11649 regret--nothing but my own folly."
11650
11651 "Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child," said Mrs. Dashwood;
11652 "SHE must be answerable."
11653
11654 Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor, satisfied that each
11655 felt their own error, wished to avoid any survey of the past that might
11656 weaken her sister's spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first
11657 subject, immediately continued,
11658
11659 "One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from the whole of the
11660 story--that all Willoughby's difficulties have arisen from the first
11661 offence against virtue, in his behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime
11662 has been the origin of every lesser one, and of all his present
11663 discontents."
11664
11665 Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark; and her mother was led
11666 by it to an enumeration of Colonel Brandon's injuries and merits, warm
11667 as friendship and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did not
11668 look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
11669
11670 Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two or three following
11671 days, that Marianne did not continue to gain strength as she had done;
11672 but while her resolution was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear
11673 cheerful and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect of time
11674 upon her health.
11675
11676 Margaret returned, and the family were again all restored to each
11677 other, again quietly settled at the cottage; and if not pursuing their
11678 usual studies with quite so much vigour as when they first came to
11679 Barton, at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
11680
11681 Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward. She had heard
11682 nothing of him since her leaving London, nothing new of his plans,
11683 nothing certain even of his present abode. Some letters had passed
11684 between her and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness; and
11685 in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:-- "We know
11686 nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no enquiries on so
11687 prohibited a subject, but conclude him to be still at Oxford;" which
11688 was all the intelligence of Edward afforded her by the correspondence,
11689 for his name was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
11690 She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of his measures.
11691
11692 Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter on business; and
11693 when, as he waited at table, he had satisfied the inquiries of his
11694 mistress as to the event of his errand, this was his voluntary
11695 communication--
11696
11697 "I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
11698
11699 Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes upon Elinor, saw her
11700 turning pale, and fell back in her chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood,
11701 whose eyes, as she answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively
11702 taken the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
11703 countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment afterwards,
11704 alike distressed by Marianne's situation, knew not on which child to
11705 bestow her principal attention.
11706
11707 The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was taken ill, had sense
11708 enough to call one of the maids, who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance,
11709 supported her into the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather
11710 better, and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret and the
11711 maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still much disordered, had so far
11712 recovered the use of her reason and voice as to be just beginning an
11713 inquiry of Thomas, as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
11714 immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor had the
11715 benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
11716
11717 "Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
11718
11719 "I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning in Exeter, and his lady
11720 too, Miss Steele as was. They was stopping in a chaise at the door of
11721 the New London Inn, as I went there with a message from Sally at the
11722 Park to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened to look up
11723 as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly it was the youngest Miss
11724 Steele; so I took off my hat, and she knew me and called to me, and
11725 inquired after you, ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss
11726 Marianne, and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
11727 their best compliments and service, and how sorry they was they had not
11728 time to come on and see you, but they was in a great hurry to go
11729 forwards, for they was going further down for a little while, but
11730 howsever, when they come back, they'd make sure to come and see you."
11731
11732 "But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
11733
11734 "Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she had changed her name since
11735 she was in these parts. She was always a very affable and free-spoken
11736 young lady, and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
11737
11738 "Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
11739
11740 "Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it, but he did not look
11741 up;--he never was a gentleman much for talking."
11742
11743 Elinor's heart could easily account for his not putting himself
11744 forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably found the same explanation.
11745
11746 "Was there no one else in the carriage?"
11747
11748 "No, ma'am, only they two."
11749
11750 "Do you know where they came from?"
11751
11752 "They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--Mrs. Ferrars told me."
11753
11754 "And are they going farther westward?"
11755
11756 "Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon be back again, and
11757 then they'd be sure and call here."
11758
11759 Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter; but Elinor knew better than
11760 to expect them. She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and
11761 was very confident that Edward would never come near them. She
11762 observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they were probably going
11763 down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
11764
11765 Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked as if she wished to
11766 hear more.
11767
11768 "Did you see them off, before you came away?"
11769
11770 "No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I could not bide any
11771 longer; I was afraid of being late."
11772
11773 "Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
11774
11775 "Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well; and to my mind she was
11776 always a very handsome young lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
11777
11778 Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question, and Thomas and the
11779 tablecloth, now alike needless, were soon afterwards dismissed.
11780 Marianne had already sent to say, that she should eat nothing more.
11781 Mrs. Dashwood's and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
11782 might think herself very well off, that with so much uneasiness as both
11783 her sisters had lately experienced, so much reason as they had often
11784 had to be careless of their meals, she had never been obliged to go
11785 without her dinner before.
11786
11787 When the dessert and the wine were arranged, and Mrs. Dashwood and
11788 Elinor were left by themselves, they remained long together in a
11789 similarity of thoughtfulness and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to
11790 hazard any remark, and ventured not to offer consolation. She now
11791 found that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation of
11792 herself; and justly concluded that every thing had been expressly
11793 softened at the time, to spare her from an increase of unhappiness,
11794 suffering as she then had suffered for Marianne. She found that she
11795 had been misled by the careful, the considerate attention of her
11796 daughter, to think the attachment, which once she had so well
11797 understood, much slighter in reality, than she had been wont to
11798 believe, or than it was now proved to be. She feared that under this
11799 persuasion she had been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her
11800 Elinor;--that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged, more
11801 immediately before her, had too much engrossed her tenderness, and led
11802 her away to forget that in Elinor she might have a daughter suffering
11803 almost as much, certainly with less self-provocation, and greater
11804 fortitude.
11805
11806
11807
11808 CHAPTER 48
11809
11810
11811 Elinor now found the difference between the expectation of an
11812 unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told to consider it,
11813 and certainty itself. She now found, that in spite of herself, she had
11814 always admitted a hope, while Edward remained single, that something
11815 would occur to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of his
11816 own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible opportunity of
11817 establishment for the lady, would arise to assist the happiness of all.
11818 But he was now married; and she condemned her heart for the lurking
11819 flattery, which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
11820
11821 That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined) he could be in
11822 orders, and consequently before he could be in possession of the
11823 living, surprised her a little at first. But she soon saw how likely
11824 it was that Lucy, in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure
11825 him, should overlook every thing but the risk of delay. They were
11826 married, married in town, and now hastening down to her uncle's. What
11827 had Edward felt on being within four miles from Barton, on seeing her
11828 mother's servant, on hearing Lucy's message!
11829
11830 They would soon, she supposed, be settled at Delaford.--Delaford,--that
11831 place in which so much conspired to give her an interest; which she
11832 wished to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid. She saw them
11833 in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw in Lucy, the active,
11834 contriving manager, uniting at once a desire of smart appearance with
11835 the utmost frugality, and ashamed to be suspected of half her
11836 economical practices;--pursuing her own interest in every thought,
11837 courting the favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
11838 wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw, nor what she
11839 wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing pleased her; she turned away
11840 her head from every sketch of him.
11841
11842 Elinor flattered herself that some one of their connections in London
11843 would write to them to announce the event, and give farther
11844 particulars,--but day after day passed off, and brought no letter, no
11845 tidings. Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found fault
11846 with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless or indolent.
11847
11848 "When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?" was an inquiry which
11849 sprung from the impatience of her mind to have something going on.
11850
11851 "I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather expect to see, than to
11852 hear from him again. I earnestly pressed his coming to us, and should
11853 not be surprised to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
11854
11855 This was gaining something, something to look forward to. Colonel
11856 Brandon must have some information to give.
11857
11858 Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure of a man on
11859 horseback drew her eyes to the window. He stopt at their gate. It was
11860 a gentleman, it was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
11861 and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was NOT Colonel
11862 Brandon--neither his air--nor his height. Were it possible, she must
11863 say it must be Edward. She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she
11864 could not be mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
11865 "He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be calm; I WILL
11866 be mistress of myself."
11867
11868 In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise aware of the
11869 mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne change colour; saw them look
11870 at herself, and whisper a few sentences to each other. She would have
11871 given the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand that
11872 she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear in their behaviour to
11873 him;--but she had no utterance, and was obliged to leave all to their
11874 own discretion.
11875
11876 Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited in silence for the
11877 appearance of their visitor. His footsteps were heard along the gravel
11878 path; in a moment he was in the passage, and in another he was before
11879 them.
11880
11881 His countenance, as he entered the room, was not too happy, even for
11882 Elinor. His complexion was white with agitation, and he looked as if
11883 fearful of his reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
11884 Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted, to the wishes of
11885 that daughter, by whom she then meant in the warmth of her heart to be
11886 guided in every thing, met with a look of forced complacency, gave him
11887 her hand, and wished him joy.
11888
11889 He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply. Elinor's lips
11890 had moved with her mother's, and, when the moment of action was over,
11891 she wished that she had shaken hands with him too. But it was then too
11892 late, and with a countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again and
11893 talked of the weather.
11894
11895 Marianne had retreated as much as possible out of sight, to conceal her
11896 distress; and Margaret, understanding some part, but not the whole of
11897 the case, thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
11898 took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained a strict
11899 silence.
11900
11901 When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness of the season, a very
11902 awful pause took place. It was put an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who
11903 felt obliged to hope that he had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a
11904 hurried manner, he replied in the affirmative.
11905
11906 Another pause.
11907
11908 Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing the sound of her own
11909 voice, now said,
11910
11911 "Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
11912
11913 "At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.-- "No, my mother
11914 is in town."
11915
11916 "I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from the table, "to inquire
11917 for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
11918
11919 She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both turned their
11920 eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed, looked doubtingly, and,
11921 after some hesitation, said,--
11922
11923 "Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs. ROBERT Ferrars."
11924
11925 "Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her mother in an
11926 accent of the utmost amazement;--and though Elinor could not speak,
11927 even HER eyes were fixed on him with the same impatient wonder. He
11928 rose from his seat, and walked to the window, apparently from not
11929 knowing what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there, and
11930 while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting the latter to
11931 pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
11932
11933 "Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard that my brother is
11934 lately married to--to the youngest--to Miss Lucy Steele."
11935
11936 His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment by all but Elinor,
11937 who sat with her head leaning over her work, in a state of such
11938 agitation as made her hardly know where she was.
11939
11940 "Yes," said he, "they were married last week, and are now at Dawlish."
11941
11942 Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran out of the room, and as
11943 soon as the door was closed, burst into tears of joy, which at first
11944 she thought would never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any
11945 where, rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--or even
11946 heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards he fell into a reverie,
11947 which no remarks, no inquiries, no affectionate address of Mrs.
11948 Dashwood could penetrate, and at last, without saying a word, quitted
11949 the room, and walked out towards the village--leaving the others in the
11950 greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change in his situation, so
11951 wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity which they had no means of
11952 lessening but by their own conjectures.
11953
11954
11955
11956 CHAPTER 49
11957
11958
11959 Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his release might
11960 appear to the whole family, it was certain that Edward was free; and to
11961 what purpose that freedom would be employed was easily pre-determined
11962 by all;--for after experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent
11963 engagement, contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
11964 done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected of him in
11965 the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction of another.
11966
11967 His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one. It was only to ask
11968 Elinor to marry him;--and considering that he was not altogether
11969 inexperienced in such a question, it might be strange that he should
11970 feel so uncomfortable in the present case as he really did, so much in
11971 need of encouragement and fresh air.
11972
11973 How soon he had walked himself into the proper resolution, however, how
11974 soon an opportunity of exercising it occurred, in what manner he
11975 expressed himself, and how he was received, need not be particularly
11976 told. This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to table at
11977 four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival, he had secured his
11978 lady, engaged her mother's consent, and was not only in the rapturous
11979 profession of the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth, one
11980 of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was more than commonly
11981 joyful. He had more than the ordinary triumph of accepted love to
11982 swell his heart, and raise his spirits. He was released without any
11983 reproach to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed his
11984 misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--and elevated at
11985 once to that security with another, which he must have thought of
11986 almost with despair, as soon as he had learnt to consider it with
11987 desire. He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from misery to
11988 happiness;--and the change was openly spoken in such a genuine,
11989 flowing, grateful cheerfulness, as his friends had never witnessed in
11990 him before.
11991
11992 His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses, all its errors
11993 confessed, and his first boyish attachment to Lucy treated with all the
11994 philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
11995
11996 "It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side," said he, "the
11997 consequence of ignorance of the world--and want of employment. Had my
11998 mother given me some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
11999 from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure, it would never
12000 have happened; for though I left Longstaple with what I thought, at the
12001 time, a most unconquerable preference for his niece, yet had I then had
12002 any pursuit, any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
12003 from her for a few months, I should very soon have outgrown the fancied
12004 attachment, especially by mixing more with the world, as in such case I
12005 must have done. But instead of having any thing to do, instead of
12006 having any profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any
12007 myself, I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
12008 twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment, which
12009 belonging to the university would have given me; for I was not entered
12010 at Oxford till I was nineteen. I had therefore nothing in the world to
12011 do, but to fancy myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
12012 in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend, no companion in my
12013 brother, and disliked new acquaintance, it was not unnatural for me to
12014 be very often at Longstaple, where I always felt myself at home, and
12015 was always sure of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
12016 of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared everything
12017 that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty too--at least I thought
12018 so THEN; and I had seen so little of other women, that I could make no
12019 comparisons, and see no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I
12020 hope, foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since in every
12021 way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural or an inexcusable
12022 piece of folly."
12023
12024 The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds and the happiness
12025 of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as promised them all, the
12026 satisfaction of a sleepless night. Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be
12027 comfortable, knew not how to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how
12028 to be enough thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
12029 nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained conversation
12030 together, and yet enjoy, as she wished, the sight and society of both.
12031
12032 Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears. Comparisons would
12033 occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy, though sincere as her love
12034 for her sister, was of a kind to give her neither spirits nor language.
12035
12036 But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From the moment of
12037 learning that Lucy was married to another, that Edward was free, to the
12038 moment of his justifying the hopes which had so instantly followed, she
12039 was every thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment had
12040 passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude removed, compared
12041 her situation with what so lately it had been,--saw him honourably
12042 released from his former engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the
12043 release, to address herself and declare an affection as tender, as
12044 constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she was oppressed, she was
12045 overcome by her own felicity;--and happily disposed as is the human
12046 mind to be easily familiarized with any change for the better, it
12047 required several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any degree
12048 of tranquillity to her heart.
12049
12050 Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for a week;--for whatever
12051 other claims might be made on him, it was impossible that less than a
12052 week should be given up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or
12053 suffice to say half that was to be said of the past, the present, and
12054 the future;--for though a very few hours spent in the hard labor of
12055 incessant talking will despatch more subjects than can really be in
12056 common between any two rational creatures, yet with lovers it is
12057 different. Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication is
12058 even made, till it has been made at least twenty times over.
12059
12060 Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder among them all,
12061 formed of course one of the earliest discussions of the lovers;--and
12062 Elinor's particular knowledge of each party made it appear to her in
12063 every view, as one of the most extraordinary and unaccountable
12064 circumstances she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
12065 and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry a girl, of
12066 whose beauty she had herself heard him speak without any admiration,--a
12067 girl too already engaged to his brother, and on whose account that
12068 brother had been thrown off by his family--it was beyond her
12069 comprehension to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful
12070 affair, to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but to her
12071 reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
12072
12073 Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing, that, perhaps,
12074 at first accidentally meeting, the vanity of the one had been so worked
12075 on by the flattery of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
12076 Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street, of his
12077 opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's affairs might have
12078 done, if applied to in time. She repeated it to Edward.
12079
12080 "THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate observation.--"And
12081 THAT," he presently added, "might perhaps be in HIS head when the
12082 acquaintance between them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
12083 think only of procuring his good offices in my favour. Other designs
12084 might afterward arise."
12085
12086 How long it had been carrying on between them, however, he was equally
12087 at a loss with herself to make out; for at Oxford, where he had
12088 remained for choice ever since his quitting London, he had had no means
12089 of hearing of her but from herself, and her letters to the very last
12090 were neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual. Not the
12091 smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred to prepare him for
12092 what followed;--and when at last it burst on him in a letter from Lucy
12093 herself, he had been for some time, he believed, half stupified between
12094 the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance. He put the
12095 letter into Elinor's hands.
12096
12097 "DEAR SIR,
12098
12099 "Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
12100 I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
12101 on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
12102 him as I once used to think I might be with you;
12103 but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
12104 another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
12105 and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
12106 good friends, as our near relationship now makes
12107 proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
12108 and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
12109 ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
12110 entirely, and as we could not live without one
12111 another, we are just returned from the altar, and
12112 are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
12113 place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
12114 but thought I would first trouble you with these
12115 few lines, and shall always remain,
12116
12117 "Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
12118 "LUCY FERRARS.
12119
12120 "I have burnt all your letters, and will return
12121 your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
12122 my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
12123 welcome to keep."
12124
12125 Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
12126
12127 "I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition," said
12128 Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter of hers seen by YOU
12129 in former days.--In a sister it is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I
12130 have blushed over the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say
12131 that since the first half year of our foolish--business--this is the
12132 only letter I ever received from her, of which the substance made me
12133 any amends for the defect of the style."
12134
12135 "However it may have come about," said Elinor, after a pause,--"they
12136 are certainly married. And your mother has brought on herself a most
12137 appropriate punishment. The independence she settled on Robert,
12138 through resentment against you, has put it in his power to make his own
12139 choice; and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
12140 a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the other for
12141 intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt, I suppose, by Robert's
12142 marrying Lucy, than she would have been by your marrying her."
12143
12144 "She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always was her favourite.--She
12145 will be more hurt by it, and on the same principle will forgive him
12146 much sooner."
12147
12148 In what state the affair stood at present between them, Edward knew
12149 not, for no communication with any of his family had yet been attempted
12150 by him. He had quitted Oxford within four and twenty hours after
12151 Lucy's letter arrived, and with only one object before him, the nearest
12152 road to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct, with
12153 which that road did not hold the most intimate connection. He could do
12154 nothing till he were assured of his fate with Miss Dashwood; and by his
12155 rapidity in seeking THAT fate, it is to be supposed, in spite of the
12156 jealousy with which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite of
12157 the modesty with which he rated his own deserts, and the politeness
12158 with which he talked of his doubts, he did not, upon the whole, expect
12159 a very cruel reception. It was his business, however, to say that he
12160 DID, and he said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject a
12161 twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination of husbands and
12162 wives.
12163
12164 That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off with a flourish of
12165 malice against him in her message by Thomas, was perfectly clear to
12166 Elinor; and Edward himself, now thoroughly enlightened on her
12167 character, had no scruple in believing her capable of the utmost
12168 meanness of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
12169 even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her ignorance and a
12170 want of liberality in some of her opinions--they had been equally
12171 imputed, by him, to her want of education; and till her last letter
12172 reached him, he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
12173 good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself. Nothing but
12174 such a persuasion could have prevented his putting an end to an
12175 engagement, which, long before the discovery of it laid him open to his
12176 mother's anger, had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to
12177 him.
12178
12179 "I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings, to give
12180 her the option of continuing the engagement or not, when I was
12181 renounced by my mother, and stood to all appearance without a friend in
12182 the world to assist me. In such a situation as that, where there
12183 seemed nothing to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living
12184 creature, how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly
12185 insisted on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing but
12186 the most disinterested affection was her inducement? And even now, I
12187 cannot comprehend on what motive she acted, or what fancied advantage
12188 it could be to her, to be fettered to a man for whom she had not the
12189 smallest regard, and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
12190 She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
12191
12192 "No; but she might suppose that something would occur in your favour;
12193 that your own family might in time relent. And at any rate, she lost
12194 nothing by continuing the engagement, for she has proved that it
12195 fettered neither her inclination nor her actions. The connection was
12196 certainly a respectable one, and probably gained her consideration
12197 among her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred, it would
12198 be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
12199
12200 Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that nothing could have
12201 been more natural than Lucy's conduct, nor more self-evident than the
12202 motive of it.
12203
12204 Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold the imprudence which
12205 compliments themselves, for having spent so much time with them at
12206 Norland, when he must have felt his own inconstancy.
12207
12208 "Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she; "because--to say
12209 nothing of my own conviction, our relations were all led away by it to
12210 fancy and expect WHAT, as you were THEN situated, could never be."
12211
12212 He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart, and a mistaken
12213 confidence in the force of his engagement.
12214
12215 "I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH was plighted to
12216 another, there could be no danger in my being with you; and that the
12217 consciousness of my engagement was to keep my heart as safe and sacred
12218 as my honour. I felt that I admired you, but I told myself it was only
12219 friendship; and till I began to make comparisons between yourself and
12220 Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that, I suppose, I WAS
12221 wrong in remaining so much in Sussex, and the arguments with which I
12222 reconciled myself to the expediency of it, were no better than
12223 these:--The danger is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but
12224 myself."
12225
12226 Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
12227
12228 Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's being expected at the
12229 Cottage, as he really wished not only to be better acquainted with him,
12230 but to have an opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
12231 his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present," said he,
12232 "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine were on the occasion,
12233 he must think I have never forgiven him for offering."
12234
12235 NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet been to the place.
12236 But so little interest had he taken in the matter, that he owed all his
12237 knowledge of the house, garden, and glebe, extent of the parish,
12238 condition of the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself, who
12239 had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard it with so much
12240 attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
12241
12242 One question after this only remained undecided, between them, one
12243 difficulty only was to be overcome. They were brought together by
12244 mutual affection, with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
12245 their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make their happiness
12246 certain--and they only wanted something to live upon. Edward had two
12247 thousand pounds, and Elinor one, which, with Delaford living, was all
12248 that they could call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs.
12249 Dashwood should advance anything; and they were neither of them quite
12250 enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty pounds a-year
12251 would supply them with the comforts of life.
12252
12253 Edward was not entirely without hopes of some favourable change in his
12254 mother towards him; and on THAT he rested for the residue of their
12255 income. But Elinor had no such dependence; for since Edward would
12256 still be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself had been
12257 spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language as only a lesser evil
12258 than his chusing Lucy Steele, she feared that Robert's offence would
12259 serve no other purpose than to enrich Fanny.
12260
12261 About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel Brandon appeared, to
12262 complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction, and to give her the dignity of
12263 having, for the first time since her living at Barton, more company
12264 with her than her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
12265 privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore walked every
12266 night to his old quarters at the Park; from whence he usually returned
12267 in the morning, early enough to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete
12268 before breakfast.
12269
12270 A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where, in his evening hours at
12271 least, he had little to do but to calculate the disproportion between
12272 thirty-six and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
12273 which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks, all the kindness
12274 of her welcome, and all the encouragement of her mother's language, to
12275 make it cheerful. Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he
12276 did revive. No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
12277 nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his visit were
12278 consequently spent in hearing and in wondering. Every thing was
12279 explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood, and he found fresh reason to rejoice
12280 in what he had done for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the
12281 interest of Elinor.
12282
12283 It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced in the good
12284 opinion of each other, as they advanced in each other's acquaintance,
12285 for it could not be otherwise. Their resemblance in good principles
12286 and good sense, in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
12287 have been sufficient to unite them in friendship, without any other
12288 attraction; but their being in love with two sisters, and two sisters
12289 fond of each other, made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
12290 which might otherwise have waited the effect of time and judgment.
12291
12292 The letters from town, which a few days before would have made every
12293 nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport, now arrived to be read
12294 with less emotion than mirth. Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the
12295 wonderful tale, to vent her honest indignation against the jilting
12296 girl, and pour forth her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she
12297 was sure, had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now, by all
12298 accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.-- "I do think," she
12299 continued, "nothing was ever carried on so sly; for it was but two days
12300 before Lucy called and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul
12301 suspected anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul! came
12302 crying to me the day after, in a great fright for fear of Mrs. Ferrars,
12303 as well as not knowing how to get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems
12304 borrowed all her money before she went off to be married, on purpose we
12305 suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not seven shillings in
12306 the world;--so I was very glad to give her five guineas to take her
12307 down to Exeter, where she thinks of staying three or four weeks with
12308 Mrs. Burgess, in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor
12309 again. And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them along
12310 with them in the chaise is worse than all. Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot
12311 get him out of my head, but you must send for him to Barton, and Miss
12312 Marianne must try to comfort him."
12313
12314 Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn. Mrs. Ferrars was the most
12315 unfortunate of women--poor Fanny had suffered agonies of
12316 sensibility--and he considered the existence of each, under such a
12317 blow, with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable, but
12318 Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were ever again to be
12319 mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even, if she might hereafter be induced
12320 to forgive her son, his wife should never be acknowledged as her
12321 daughter, nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy with
12322 which everything had been carried on between them, was rationally
12323 treated as enormously heightening the crime, because, had any suspicion
12324 of it occurred to the others, proper measures would have been taken to
12325 prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join with him in
12326 regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward had not rather been
12327 fulfilled, than that she should thus be the means of spreading misery
12328 farther in the family.-- He thus continued:
12329
12330 "Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name, which does not
12331 surprise us; but, to our great astonishment, not a line has been
12332 received from him on the occasion. Perhaps, however, he is kept silent
12333 by his fear of offending, and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a
12334 line to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter of proper
12335 submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny, and by her shewn to
12336 her mother, might not be taken amiss; for we all know the tenderness of
12337 Mrs. Ferrars's heart, and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be
12338 on good terms with her children."
12339
12340 This paragraph was of some importance to the prospects and conduct of
12341 Edward. It determined him to attempt a reconciliation, though not
12342 exactly in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
12343
12344 "A letter of proper submission!" repeated he; "would they have me beg
12345 my mother's pardon for Robert's ingratitude to HER, and breach of
12346 honour to ME?--I can make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
12347 penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy; but that would not
12348 interest.--I know of no submission that IS proper for me to make."
12349
12350 "You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor, "because you have
12351 offended;--and I should think you might NOW venture so far as to
12352 profess some concern for having ever formed the engagement which drew
12353 on you your mother's anger."
12354
12355 He agreed that he might.
12356
12357 "And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility may be
12358 convenient while acknowledging a second engagement, almost as imprudent
12359 in HER eyes as the first."
12360
12361 He had nothing to urge against it, but still resisted the idea of a
12362 letter of proper submission; and therefore, to make it easier to him,
12363 as he declared a much greater willingness to make mean concessions by
12364 word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that, instead of writing
12365 to Fanny, he should go to London, and personally intreat her good
12366 offices in his favour.-- "And if they really DO interest themselves,"
12367 said Marianne, in her new character of candour, "in bringing about a
12368 reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny are not entirely
12369 without merit."
12370
12371 After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three or four days, the
12372 two gentlemen quitted Barton together.-- They were to go immediately to
12373 Delaford, that Edward might have some personal knowledge of his future
12374 home, and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what improvements
12375 were needed to it; and from thence, after staying there a couple of
12376 nights, he was to proceed on his journey to town.
12377
12378
12379
12380 CHAPTER 50
12381
12382
12383 After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars, just so violent
12384 and so steady as to preserve her from that reproach which she always
12385 seemed fearful of incurring, the reproach of being too amiable, Edward
12386 was admitted to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
12387
12388 Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating. For many years of
12389 her life she had had two sons; but the crime and annihilation of Edward
12390 a few weeks ago, had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of
12391 Robert had left her for a fortnight without any; and now, by the
12392 resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
12393
12394 In spite of his being allowed once more to live, however, he did not
12395 feel the continuance of his existence secure, till he had revealed his
12396 present engagement; for the publication of that circumstance, he
12397 feared, might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry him off
12398 as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution therefore it was
12399 revealed, and he was listened to with unexpected calmness. Mrs.
12400 Ferrars at first reasonably endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying
12401 Miss Dashwood, by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss
12402 Morton he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--and
12403 enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton was the daughter
12404 of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds, while Miss Dashwood was only
12405 the daughter of a private gentleman with no more than THREE; but when
12406 she found that, though perfectly admitting the truth of her
12407 representation, he was by no means inclined to be guided by it, she
12408 judged it wisest, from the experience of the past, to submit--and
12409 therefore, after such an ungracious delay as she owed to her own
12410 dignity, and as served to prevent every suspicion of good-will, she
12411 issued her decree of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
12412
12413 What she would engage to do towards augmenting their income was next to
12414 be considered; and here it plainly appeared, that though Edward was now
12415 her only son, he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
12416 inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year, not the smallest
12417 objection was made against Edward's taking orders for the sake of two
12418 hundred and fifty at the utmost; nor was anything promised either for
12419 the present or in future, beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had
12420 been given with Fanny.
12421
12422 It was as much, however, as was desired, and more than was expected, by
12423 Edward and Elinor; and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
12424 seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
12425
12426 With an income quite sufficient to their wants thus secured to them,
12427 they had nothing to wait for after Edward was in possession of the
12428 living, but the readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon, with
12429 an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor, was making
12430 considerable improvements; and after waiting some time for their
12431 completion, after experiencing, as usual, a thousand disappointments
12432 and delays from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
12433 as usual, broke through the first positive resolution of not marrying
12434 till every thing was ready, and the ceremony took place in Barton
12435 church early in the autumn.
12436
12437 The first month after their marriage was spent with their friend at the
12438 Mansion-house; from whence they could superintend the progress of the
12439 Parsonage, and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--could
12440 chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep. Mrs. Jennings's
12441 prophecies, though rather jumbled together, were chiefly fulfilled; for
12442 she was able to visit Edward and his wife in their Parsonage by
12443 Michaelmas, and she found in Elinor and her husband, as she really
12444 believed, one of the happiest couples in the world. They had in fact
12445 nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel Brandon and Marianne,
12446 and rather better pasturage for their cows.
12447
12448 They were visited on their first settling by almost all their relations
12449 and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came to inspect the happiness which she was
12450 almost ashamed of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at the
12451 expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
12452
12453 "I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister," said John, as
12454 they were walking together one morning before the gates of Delaford
12455 House, "THAT would be saying too much, for certainly you have been one
12456 of the most fortunate young women in the world, as it is. But, I
12457 confess, it would give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon
12458 brother. His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
12459 such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I have not
12460 seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there is now standing in
12461 Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps, Marianne may not seem exactly
12462 the person to attract him--yet I think it would altogether be advisable
12463 for you to have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
12464 Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what may
12465 happen--for, when people are much thrown together, and see little of
12466 anybody else--and it will always be in your power to set her off to
12467 advantage, and so forth;--in short, you may as well give her a
12468 chance--You understand me."--
12469
12470 But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always treated them
12471 with the make-believe of decent affection, they were never insulted by
12472 her real favour and preference. THAT was due to the folly of Robert,
12473 and the cunning of his wife; and it was earned by them before many
12474 months had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter, which had
12475 at first drawn Robert into the scrape, was the principal instrument of
12476 his deliverance from it; for her respectful humility, assiduous
12477 attentions, and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening was
12478 given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars to his choice, and
12479 re-established him completely in her favour.
12480
12481 The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair, and the prosperity which
12482 crowned it, therefore, may be held forth as a most encouraging instance
12483 of what an earnest, an unceasing attention to self-interest, however
12484 its progress may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
12485 advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time and
12486 conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance, and privately
12487 visited her in Bartlett's Buildings, it was only with the view imputed
12488 to him by his brother. He merely meant to persuade her to give up the
12489 engagement; and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
12490 of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews would settle
12491 the matter. In that point, however, and that only, he erred;--for
12492 though Lucy soon gave him hopes that his eloquence would convince her
12493 in TIME, another visit, another conversation, was always wanted to
12494 produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered in her mind when
12495 they parted, which could only be removed by another half hour's
12496 discourse with himself. His attendance was by this means secured, and
12497 the rest followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward, they came
12498 gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject on which he had always
12499 more to say than on any other, and in which she soon betrayed an
12500 interest even equal to his own; and in short, it became speedily
12501 evident to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother. He was
12502 proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward, and very proud of
12503 marrying privately without his mother's consent. What immediately
12504 followed is known. They passed some months in great happiness at
12505 Dawlish; for she had many relations and old acquaintances to cut--and
12506 he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--and from thence
12507 returning to town, procured the forgiveness of Mrs. Ferrars, by the
12508 simple expedient of asking it, which, at Lucy's instigation, was
12509 adopted. The forgiveness, at first, indeed, as was reasonable,
12510 comprehended only Robert; and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and
12511 therefore could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
12512 longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct and
12513 messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence, and gratitude for
12514 the unkindness she was treated with, procured her in time the haughty
12515 notice which overcame her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards,
12516 by rapid degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
12517 Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert or Fanny;
12518 and while Edward was never cordially forgiven for having once intended
12519 to marry her, and Elinor, though superior to her in fortune and birth,
12520 was spoken of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered, and
12521 always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child. They settled in
12522 town, received very liberal assistance from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the
12523 best terms imaginable with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the
12524 jealousies and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
12525 in which their husbands of course took a part, as well as the frequent
12526 domestic disagreements between Robert and Lucy themselves, nothing
12527 could exceed the harmony in which they all lived together.
12528
12529 What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest son, might have
12530 puzzled many people to find out; and what Robert had done to succeed to
12531 it, might have puzzled them still more. It was an arrangement,
12532 however, justified in its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing
12533 ever appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give a
12534 suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income, as either leaving
12535 his brother too little, or bringing himself too much;--and if Edward
12536 might be judged from the ready discharge of his duties in every
12537 particular, from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home, and
12538 from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits, he might be supposed no
12539 less contented with his lot, no less free from every wish of an
12540 exchange.
12541
12542 Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her family as could well
12543 be contrived, without rendering the cottage at Barton entirely useless,
12544 for her mother and sisters spent much more than half their time with
12545 her. Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well as pleasure
12546 in the frequency of her visits at Delaford; for her wish of bringing
12547 Marianne and Colonel Brandon together was hardly less earnest, though
12548 rather more liberal than what John had expressed. It was now her
12549 darling object. Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
12550 she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant enjoyment to her
12551 valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at the mansion-house was
12552 equally the wish of Edward and Elinor. They each felt his sorrows, and
12553 their own obligations, and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the
12554 reward of all.
12555
12556 With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge so intimate of
12557 his goodness--with a conviction of his fond attachment to herself,
12558 which at last, though long after it was observable to everybody
12559 else--burst on her--what could she do?
12560
12561 Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate. She was born to
12562 discover the falsehood of her own opinions, and to counteract, by her
12563 conduct, her most favourite maxims. She was born to overcome an
12564 affection formed so late in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
12565 superior to strong esteem and lively friendship, voluntarily to give
12566 her hand to another!--and THAT other, a man who had suffered no less
12567 than herself under the event of a former attachment, whom, two years
12568 before, she had considered too old to be married,--and who still sought
12569 the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
12570
12571 But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice to an irresistible
12572 passion, as once she had fondly flattered herself with expecting,--instead
12573 of remaining even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
12574 pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her more calm and
12575 sober judgment she had determined on,--she found herself at nineteen,
12576 submitting to new attachments, entering on new duties, placed in a new
12577 home, a wife, the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
12578
12579 Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best loved him,
12580 believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he was consoled for every past
12581 affliction;--her regard and her society restored his mind to animation,
12582 and his spirits to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own
12583 happiness in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight of
12584 each observing friend. Marianne could never love by halves; and her
12585 whole heart became, in time, as much devoted to her husband, as it had
12586 once been to Willoughby.
12587
12588 Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without a pang; and his
12589 punishment was soon afterwards complete in the voluntary forgiveness of
12590 Mrs. Smith, who, by stating his marriage with a woman of character, as
12591 the source of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
12592 behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have been happy
12593 and rich. That his repentance of misconduct, which thus brought its
12594 own punishment, was sincere, need not be doubted;--nor that he long
12595 thought of Colonel Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But
12596 that he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society, or
12597 contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a broken heart, must
12598 not be depended on--for he did neither. He lived to exert, and
12599 frequently to enjoy himself. His wife was not always out of humour,
12600 nor his home always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
12601 and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable degree of
12602 domestic felicity.
12603
12604 For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility in surviving her
12605 loss--he always retained that decided regard which interested him in
12606 every thing that befell her, and made her his secret standard of
12607 perfection in woman;--and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him
12608 in after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
12609
12610 Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage, without
12611 attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for Sir John and Mrs.
12612 Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them, Margaret had reached an
12613 age highly suitable for dancing, and not very ineligible for being
12614 supposed to have a lover.
12615
12616 Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant communication
12617 which strong family affection would naturally dictate;--and among the
12618 merits and the happiness of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked
12619 as the least considerable, that though sisters, and living almost
12620 within sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
12621 between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
12622
12623
12624
12625 THE END
12626